“Tracing Dax’s footsteps through
the centuries has the unmistakable feel of sitting around a campfire under the
spell of a master storyteller. ... Intelligent, thoughtful and—no less
important—fun.”
—Heather Jarman,
author
of This Gray Spirit
(Star Trek: Deep Space Nine—
Mission:
Gamma, Book Two)
“Reaps its potential brilliantly.”
—Trekweb.com
POCKET BOOKS
New York London Toronto Sydney
Singapore Trill
The
sale of this book without its cover is unauthorized. If you purchased this book
without a cover, you should be aware that it was reported to the publisher as
“unsold and destroyed.” Neither the author nor the publisher has received
payment for the sale of this “stripped book.”
This book consists of works of
fiction. Names, characters, places and incidents are products of the authors’
imagination or are used fictitiously. Any resemblance to actual events or
locales or persons, living or dead, is entirely coincidental.
POCKET BOOKS, a division of Simon & Schuster, Inc.
1230 Avenue of the Americas, New York, NY 10020
Copyright © 1999 by Paramount
Pictures. All Rights Reserved. Originally published as a trade paperback in
1999 by Pocket Books
STAR TREK is a Registered Trademark of Paramount
Pictures.
This book is published by
Pocket Books, a division of Simon & Schuster, Inc., under exclusive license
from Paramount Pictures.
All rights reserved, including
the right to reproduce this book or portions thereof in any form whatsoever.
For information address Pocket Books, 1230 Avenue of the Americas, New York, NY
10020
ISBN: 0-7434-5682-3
First Pocket Books mass market
paperback printing January 2003
10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1
POCKET and colophon are
registered trademarks of Simon & Schuster, Inc.
For information regarding
special discounts for bulk purchases, please contact Simon & Schuster
Special Sales at 1-800-456-6798 or [email protected]
Printed in the U.S.A.
Judith & Garfield Reeves-Stevens
“Second star to the right ...”
“... and straight on ’til morning.”
“In nine lives I’ve been a
little of everything.”
—Ezri Dax
“The Siege of AR-558”
DAX
Our baby ... would
have been so beautiful.
And with that, Dax
exhales her last breath and dies.
STRANGE AS IT may
seem, that was how it started. Back in April 1998, I read Ira Steven Behr and
Hans Beimler’s moving script, “Tears of the Prophets,” the finale for the sixth
season of Star Trek: Deep Space Nine, confirming the rumors that had
already been spreading for months. I read those words, and that’s when I knew
the book you now hold was going to happen.
Jadzia
died, and something in the back of my mind just clicked.
But why
do a book about Dax? I mean, let’s face it, she doesn’t fit into the usual
formula for a successful Star Trek book—she’s not a captain, she’s not
bald, and she doesn’t have pointed ears. The skeptics I encountered were beside
themselves: How could I possibly expect people to be interested?
And it
wasn’t as if Jadzia’s demise meant I could do with the character as I pleased.
When “Tears of the Prophets” aired, I knew the death of one Dax would mean the
birth of another. We all did, didn’t we? She was a Trill, for cryin’ out
loud—that was the thing that most defined her, that she (or he; we still didn’t
know at that point) would be back. It would be a different host, of course—the
ninth—with the memories of all the previous hosts, male and female, going back
nearly four hundred years. Each new personality was different from the one
before it, each new life always striving to distinguish itself from the last. I
started to wonder about the periods in Star Trek history those hosts had
lived through, the things they might have done, the familiar faces they might
have encountered. And then I grinned like an idiot.
“Why
Dax?” Are you kidding? Why not?
How
could I ignore the storytelling possibilities implicit in the Dax character?
The opportunity not only to flesh out its past lives, but to explore the ways
in which they’ve always played a part in the Star Trek universe?
And
then came the clincher—the inspiration that would, I was certain, make the
project truly unique among Star Trek books. This wasn’t going to be a
biographical novel, with one voice trying to capture the entire scope of Dax’s
life. I mean, think about it: Dax is a living anthology—a collection of
stories. The book would be one too.
So I
went forward, and on the way Deep Space Nine’s audience was introduced to a new Dax. Ezri
came on the scene as the ninth host, and to the delight of Star Trek fans
everywhere, myself among them, she proved as popular as Jadzia—precisely
because, true to the nature of Dax, she was completely different from
Jadzia! Wonderfully brought to life by Terry Farrell, Jadzia had been a strong,
confident presence, someone who’d spent her entire adult life preparing herself
to process the diverse lives embodied by the Dax symbiont. Ezri, masterfully
portrayed by Nicole deBoer, was just the opposite; having been forced by
circumstances to become joined to Dax, she was completely unprepared at first
to balance the combined personalities of eight previous lives. We only got to
watch her struggle for a year, but what a year it was.
We
caught glimpses of the other hosts over the years, too, most notably Joran and
Curzon. Every once in a while the show would drop a tantalizing new detail
about one of the others, but for the most part they were little more than names
and professions. It was enough to create a rough time line, and from there, the
book just took off.
And it’s
entirely fair to say that this collection wouldn’t have been possible without
the innovative ideas that never stopped coming from the talented writers and
producers of Deep Space Nine, who gave us such incredible characters to
build upon. So to Rick Berman, Michael Piller, Ira Steven Behr, Ronald D.
Moore, Hans Beimler, Rene Echevarria, Robert Hewitt Wolfe, David Weddle,
Bradley Thompson, Peter Allen
Fields, and the many others who helped to shape Dax along the way ... I
gratefully raise my glass to you all.
I was
also privileged to gather together a talented group of professional authors
who, as I’d hoped, proved to be as eclectic as Dax’s hosts, and as enthusiastic
about the project as I was. The tales they wove are thrilling, touching,
suspenseful, funny, provocative, even chilling at times. But you needn’t take
my word for it. Read their stories. Experience them for yourselves. More than
anyone else, they deserve the credit for this book, because right from the
beginning, they believed in it. They saw the possibilities.
And
that, after all, may be the truest spirit of Star Trek.
Marco Palmieri,
New York City,
July 1999
“She’s a Dax.
Sometimes they don’t think. They just do.”
—Benjamin Sisko
“Penumbra”
Judith & Garfield Reeves-Stevens first sat at the
Replimat ten years ago to eavesdrop on Odo and Quark as part of their research
for The Making of Deep Space Nine, the first of four behind-the-scenes
books they have written about Star Trek film and television productions.
They are also the authors of three classic Star Trek novels, including
the groundbreaking Federation, as well as the epic DS9 trilogy, Millennium,
about the catastrophic discovery of the Bajoran system’s second wormhole.
In addition, the Reeves-Stevenses are co-writers with William Shatner for the
ongoing series of bestselling novels chronicling the continuing adventures of
Captain Kirk after his “apparent” death in Star Trek Generations.
The Reeves-Stevenses’ other novels include the Los
Angeles Times bestseller Icefire—hailed by Stephen King as “the best
thriller of its type since The Hunt for Red October”—and Quicksilver,
which Publishers Weekly proclaimed “a warp-speed technothriller.”
The Reeves-Stevenses are also the authors of the classic sf/fantasy crossover
trilogy The Chronicles of Galen Sword, available from Babbage Books, and
are supervising producers and writers for the hit syndicated sf/fantasy series,
Sir Arthur Conan Doyle’s The Lost World.
Judith & Garfield
Reeves-Stevens
SHE
WAS LOST. Surrounded by the precariously stacked, cast-off debris of
an antique alien city. Beneath unfamiliar stars and a single bloated moon. Her
feet swelling from the stored daytime heat of the sand and gravel she had
crossed, from the endless walking, from the ridiculously contorted shoes Julian
had insisted she wear. It was enough to make a person say End program
and go back to her quarters and—
“No,”
Ezri Dax said aloud.
She was
many things. Many to the power of nine, she thought. But she wasn’t a
quitter. Well, Tobin was a bit of a quitter when it came to dealing with
Raifi. And Audrid always believed she could have done more to save Jayvin. And
Torias ... well, okay, Ezri reluctantly admitted to herself, Torias
wouldn’t have gotten lost in the first place. But there was that time when ...
“Aggh,”
she said to break the relentlessly unpredictable connective thread of
interaction and reflection that stitched together all the lives she had lived,
that at least a part of her had lived. “I’m doing it again.”
She
sighed, breathing in the night’s cool desert air, shivering as she hugged her
sleeveless arms to her chest. The tiny disks of reflective plastic sewn to the
fabric of the long, midnight-blue gown she wore—almost wore—scratched
the flesh of her arms. Across her exposed back, there was only a chill breeze
on far too much bare skin. One more time she wondered why she kept letting
Julian talk her into these bizarre historical costumes and adventures from
Earth’s past.
She
shook her head determinedly, as if that’s all it would take to clear more than
three centuries’ worth of cobwebs, then put her hands on her hips and, with
renewed resolve, looked about the graveyard of oddly angled broken glass and
twisted metal. She deliberately ignored the dainty, indigo-sequined evening bag
dangling from her wrist. Somehow, its triviality seemed especially
inappropriate, considering the seriousness of her situation.
“Okay
... ,” she addressed herself firmly. She looked up at a towering construction
of colored glass tubes and wire and metal to her side. In the soft light of the
full moon, she could see it formed a caricature of a humanoid male with a
vacant grin and narrow mustache, wearing a circular black hat with a disklike
brim, one hand held up in an eternal wave of greeting—or a warning to go no farther. “... I saw you from
the front gate,” she said to the impassive giant, “and you were on my ...
left.” Ezri peered into the dark labyrinth of other twisted tangles of glass
and metal, thin rods and shafts jumbled and interlocked in what Jadzia might
recognize as enormous metallic crystals grown at random. “So the gate should be
somewhere in that direction ... on my right.” She gazed above the ragged black
silhouettes that formed a fractal horizon of debris in that direction, but the
desert air was so clear she could detect no distant glow of the blazing lights
of the city she sought. The stars were as stark and bright in every direction.
The space between them as impenetrably black. Wherever she was, wherever she
had to go, her surroundings were offering no clue as to what her direction
should be.
“I just
have to ...” Ezri faltered, having utterly failed to convince herself of her
logic.”... go straight down there and ... ugh, why do I even pretend I know
what I’m doing?”
She
kicked viciously at the gravel beneath her, sending up a pale cloud of dust in
the moonlight, at the same time thoroughly wedging a small, sharp stone under
her cramped and crushed-together toes.
“Aggh,”
she said again as she hopped awkwardly on one foot, trying to twist off the
open-toed shoe to free the stone.
But
hopping on gravel in a high-heeled shoe was next to impossible. And when
confounded by the long tight gown she wore, not even all of Emony’s gymnastic
skills could come to Ezri’s rescue.
With a
strangled cry of frustrated rage, Ezri toppled backward, braced herself for the
impact of sharp gravel along her bare back—
—then
gasped in surprise as a pair of strong hands caught her and gallantly restored
her to her feet.
“Julian?!”
she said as she spun around to face her rescuer, arms already reaching out to
embrace him.
But the
blinding smile that greeted her didn’t belong to the chief medical officer of
Deep Space 9. “Sorry to disappoint ya, doll.” It was Vic Fontaine. A
holographic simulation of a quintessential Las Vegas nightclub singer from
Earth, circa 1962 A.C.E. He gave her a wink.
Ezri
dropped her arms. Vic smiled as if he could sense the change in her mood.
“I was
going to ask what a broad like you’s doing in a dump like this,” Vic said, “but
I think I get the picture. The boyfriend’s a big no-show, am I right, or am I
right?”
Ezri
shifted uncomfortably on the gravel, one foot still in bondage to its shoe, the
other resting uncomfortably on the rough stones. “Actually, Julian doesn’t know
I came up here.”
Vic
shot her a sideways look. “What? You two lovebirds have a spat?”
Ezri
shook her head, almost lost her balance again. “No. We had a date, down on the
Strip. .. .” She waved her hand around, vaguely trying to indicate the
direction of Las Vegas, three simulated kilometers in ... some direction or
another from here, but gave up. She had no idea where the city was anymore.
“But he got called into emergency surgery.”
“Son of
a gun,” Vic said. “Hasn’t been a lot of that since the Big One.”
Ezri
nodded. The station had been quiet in the past few weeks since the Dominion War
had finally ended. Life had been almost normal, or at least it appeared to be
when filtered through Jadzia’s memories. Ezri herself had been on the station
for just less than a year, and only knew it in its wartime state of operations.
And in the aftermath of war.
But
even Ezri knew the end of the war hadn’t brought total peace to the station.
Colonel Kira was still brooding over Odo’s departure, and was stubbornly
refusing most of Ezri’s offers to provide counselling. Instead, as the new
commander of the station, she seemed to be sublimating all her frustrated
emotions into convoluted plans to catch Quark red-handed at something—anything
illegal, or even questionable. But at least all that attention had given
Quark a new purpose in life. Except for those two weeks when the Ferengi
barkeep had fled into hiding on Bajor after some bio-acceleration concoction he
had peddled had succeeded in growing hair on every part of Morn’s body except
the prune-faced alien’s head, Quark had been the station’s sole source of
excitement.
There’d
be more excitement to come soon, though, Ezri knew. What with Kasidy Yates
expecting Captain Sisko’s baby and half the religious leaders on Bajor debating
the significance of that birth in light of the mysterious rash of new visions
being experienced by those who used the Orbs. On top of that, the Cardassian
reconstruction effort was finally hitting its stride and even Bajor was contributing supplies and personnel to
restore that battered world, making DS9’s loading docks work at full capacity,
twenty-six hours a day. And—
“You’re
shivering,” Vic said.
Ezri
came out of her reverie as the hologram wrapped his black sports jacket around
her bare shoulders. “I did it again,” she said crossly.
“Ya
gotta give me more than that to go on, doll.”
“Rambling,”
Ezri said. “It’s ... I think one thought, and that makes me think of another,
and it’s not as if I only have one lifetime of memories to remember, I’ve got
eight, so ... so everything I think reminds me of something else, and the next
thing I know ...” Ezri paused, distracted by a sudden recollection of how
Curzon had once had a similar conversation with Ben Sisko at Utopia Planitia. It
was late at night, after Sisko’s shift was over. Curzon had added healthy
dollops of Saurian brandy to the raktajino. “I hate raktajino,” Ezri
said to Vic’s bafflement. But Jadzia had enjoyed the beverage. Which made
Ezri remember one night when Jadzia and Sisko had been talking late at Quark’s,
after Sisko’s shift was over. ... “Aghh!”
“Don’t
tell me,” Vic said kindly. “Rambling.”
“Especially
when I’m upset.”
“Such
as, when a certain young doctor gets called off for emergency surgery on a
Saturday night.”
Ezri
studied the hologram, suddenly confused. “It’s not Saturday ... is it?”
Vic
shrugged with a patient grin. “Hey, doll. It’s not Saturday, this isn’t Las
Vegas, and it’s sure not 1962. There’s
a holosuite wall not ten feet in front of you. But why spoil a beeyootiful
evening with cold hard facts?” He offered her his arm. “C’mon, you look like
you need to take a load off.”
Ezri
had no idea what the hologram meant by that, but she took his arm, using her
free hand to keep his jacket tightly closed around her throat. “I don’t think I
can walk much farther on this gravel,” she warned him.
“Then
why don’t you walk over there,” Vic said. Ezri looked where he was pointing and
saw an expanse of grass edging the gravel right beside her. She set her
shoeless foot upon it. It was soft, springy, and impossible to miss. But
somehow, she had. Impossible, she thought. Unless ...
“Did
you do that?” Ezri asked.
Vic
guided her toward what appeared to be a large shoe, maybe two meters tall at
the heel. In the moonlight, it had a metallic, silvery shimmer. “Do what?”
“The
grass. Aren’t all the simulation parameters set at the factory, or something?”
“Hey,
doll, do I look like a parameter?”
Ezri
didn’t believe it, but she felt embarrassed because she might just have
insulted a hologram. Somewhere, deep within her, Tobin had memories of the
earliest versions of what would become holosuite technology—the bulky encounter
suits, the crude sensory helmets, the exceedingly clumsy feedback gloves. Four
lifetimes later, Joran had found a disturbing new application for the emerging
technology. But for all the memories of holographic environments shared by
Ezri’s predecessors, each recollection carried with it the clear-cut knowledge that such artificially
constructed environments were unreal.
But not
to Ezri.
She had
grown up with holoenvironments. As a child back home on Sappora VII, she had
had a personal holoplayroom that had served as a welcome escape from her
mother, for both her and her younger brother, Norvo. In fact, one of her first
encounters with Earth had been in her favorite program, an extremely realistic
simulation of an African veldt, complete with wildlife. Apparently, it was a
classic.
That
early experience with holotechnology had made it easy for Ezri to adapt to
Starfleet Academy’s extensive use of even more sophisticated simulations for
training its young cadets. And now, since she had been joined with the Dax
symbiont and her mind was constantly flooded with the memories of all of Dax’s
previous hosts, objective reality had become an even more fleeting notion to
her. There was no reason for her not to think of holograms as any more
or less real than the thousands of individuals who populated her shared
memories. In fact, since Vic Fontaine was by some quirk of programming a
hologram who knew he was a hologram, Ezri felt she had even less reason
to think of him as anything other than a real individual.
“I’m
sorry,” Ezri said. “I didn’t mean to ... you know.”
“No
offense taken, doll.” Vic stopped, then looked around the clearing in the midst
of the graveyard as if he had arrived at a long-sought destination. “This looks
like the place.”
“What
place?”
“The
place to rest those barkin’ dogs of yours.” Again Vic pointed ahead, and as if
he had given a cue to some unseen stage manager back at his nightclub, a moment
later the giant shoe blazed with lights, studded as it was by dozens of
incandescent glass globes.
Ezri
blinked at the sudden brightness that flooded the clearing, wondering how Vic
had known the shoe would light up just then, or if he had somehow been
responsible for what it had done. Either way, now she could see she was
surrounded not by bulky machinery and sculptures, but by signs.
She saw
individual letters that were a full two meters high, giant bottles poised over
equally mammoth glasses, what looked to be a chorus line of dancing dabo girls
frozen in midkick. Some signs were outlined by glass globes, others by glass
tubes. For a moment, Ezri wondered if the map she had consulted was in error.
This might not be a junkyard after all. It could be some type of art museum.
“What
is this place?” she asked.
“YESCO,”
Vic said with a dramatic flourish of his hand. “The Young Electric Sign
Company. They’ve been making all the signs on the Strip since the whole big
ball o’ wax got started.”
Ezri
still didn’t understand. “But these look broken. Is it a repair facility?”
“Some
things can’t be fixed, sweetheart.” Ezri watched as Vic regarded the derelict
signs with holographic sadness. “The Silver Slipper. The Golden Nugget. Caesar’s
... All kaput. All finito. That’s Las Vegas for ya. A real Neverland. Home to lost boys, lost dreams, here
today, gone tomorrow ...”
“Wait a
minute. What’s a sign from Caesar’s doing here?”
Vic
turned to her, his eyes wide with delighted surprise. “What kind of question is
that?”
“Well,
this is Las Vegas, 1962, right?”
“Don’t
stop now, you’re on a roll.”
Ezri
paused, decided Vic’s colloquialism was some sort of food allusion, and ignored
it. “But the gaming establishment known as Caesar’s Palace was still in
operation as of 2053. For two months following the outbreak of Earth’s World
War III, Caesar’s was the operational command center for Colonel Amber’s
Regimental Volunteers. It was the site of the final battle of—”
Vic
said it with her, “—the Siege of Las Vegas.” He cocked his head at her,
curious. “How’s a little girl like you know so much about things like that?”
Ezri
shrugged. “Well, that’s why I decided to come up here tonight. I was checking
out this location for Julian ... in case he wanted to try out a new historical
last stand. He’s got this thing for lost causes. ...”
“Then
you’ve come to the right place.”
“No,
no. If this is 1962—”
“—or a
reasonable facsimile thereof—” Vic added.
“—then
how can you know what’s going to happen after World War III, almost ...” She
hesitated as she did the math. After lifetimes of thinking in terms of clear
and straightforward stardates, Earth years were hopelessly perplexing in
comparison.
“Ninety-one
years later?” Vic said helpfully.
“Exactly,”
Ezri said. “Isn’t that like breaking the rules?”
Vic
looked up at the stars, all but the brightest ones now hidden by the glare from
the blazing silver shoe. He tugged on his shirt collar, loosening his thin
black tie. “Depends on who makes those rules, wouldn’t you say?”
“Well
...” Ezri began uncertainly, “then that would be whoever programmed you in the
first place. Right?”
“My pal
Felix. Great guy, but sometimes he’s been known to borrow a bit of code from
this place and that. So out here, at the edge of the program, sometimes things
get a bit muddled. Sort of like me, ya know.” Vic looked up at the stars, as if
wishing he could reach for them. “Sure I’m strictly 1962, but I gotta tell ya,
I know everything there is to know about that station you all say you come from,
and that century.” Vic looked back at Ezri and tapped a finger against her
nose. “Just between you and me and the Man in the Moon, I don’t think Felix has
a good grasp of the importance of purging memory buffers. Not that I’m
complaining, mind you. You’d be surprised what happens when programming mixes
it up in here. Ya get all sorts of ... unexpected iterations. Not that a mutt
like me has any idea of what I’m talking about.”
Ezri
gazed thoughtfully at Vic’s smoothly handsome face, framed in silver hair. He
was an enigma among holograms, that much everyone on DS9 could agree on. He
knew he was a hologram, he had the capability of entering other holosuite
simulations, and he seemed to
have some kind of ongoing existence even when the holosuites in Quark’s bar
were offline. Jake Sisko had sometimes wondered if Vic might be a captive alien
personality, somehow downloaded into the holosuites’ memory circuits. Chief
O’Brien, when overly fortified by bloodwine, had once forwarded the theory that
Vic represented the next step in the evolution of machine intelligence, like
the eerily lifelike Emergency Medical Holograms that were becoming more common
throughout Starfleet.
“Vic,
may I ask you a question?”
Vic
gave her a playful smile as if he could read her mind as easily as a Betazoid
and knew what was coming. “Shoot, dollface.”
“What’s
it like being a hologram?”
Vic
laughed. “Answer me this first,” he said. “What’s it like bein’ a Trill?”
“I
think you mean, a joined Trill.”
“ ‘You
say tomato. ...’ ”
Again
with the food, Ezri thought.
But she gave Vic’s question serious consideration, not because of anything in
Jadzia’s or Audrid’s or even Joran’s past, but because of her
own—Ezri’s—Starfleet training as a counsellor.
“What’s
it like being joined ... ?” she repeated. “In a word, confused.”
Vic
gestured with open hands held to the heavens. “What’s it like being a hologram?
I couldn’t have said it better myself. Confused, with a capital con.”
Ezri
frowned, not willing to accept that answer for a Ferengi second. “What does a
hologram have to be confused about?”
Vic
stared at her, open-mouthed, and shook his head once, exactly as Ezri had seen
some Las Vegas comedian do, on an earlier date she’d had with Julian. Jimmy the
Ranti ... or something like that.
“You
think being confused is something that can only happen to your kinda people?”
Vic asked. He tapped both hands to his chest beneath his loosened tie and open
collar. “I’m a twentieth-century hologram in a twenty-fourth-century world.
Sometimes I have to ask myself if I’m the only real McCoy on the face of
the Earth and all you people are mathematical constructs being generated by
some big number-crunching hunk of transistors and vacuum tubes out in the great
beyond. Don’t get me wrong, sweetheart. I love my life. But still, sometimes I
wonder where it is I’m going, and worse yet, where I was before I was here.”
Ezri
caught herself replying with more than a touch of Jadzia the scientist. “Those
questions are merely a common function of any self-aware intelligence attempting
to build patterns from the past in order to anticipate the future.” She paused,
grimacing at how cold she had sounded. “What I meant to say was, how confusing
can life be for you if you’ve been programmed to mesh perfectly with your
environment? I mean, you know where all the grassy parts are. You know when the
lights will go on. It’s ... a perfect match.”
“Perfect?”
Vic raised his eyebrows skeptically. “It doesn’t work that way, dollface. But
from my side of the street, I’m looking at you, saying, How confusing can it be
for her? She can go anywhere in the whole wide universe, see anything, be anyone, for real.”
Sudden
fatigue swept over Ezri. She looked around for someplace to sit. “It doesn’t
work that way for me, either.”
Maybe
he really can read my mind, Ezri
thought as she watched Vic drag a large metal box out from beside the glowing
silver slipper. The grimy container looked as if it had once held electrical
connections, back in the days before transtators.
Vic
brushed off the top surface of the box, sending puffs of holographic dust into
the air. “Park it here, doll,” he said.
Ezri
took that as an invitation to sit, and did, wincing as the sudden chill of the
metal made itself known through the thin fabric of her gown.
Vic
swung a foot up on the corner of the box, rested an elbow against his knee.
“So, you’re not convincing me.”
“About
what?”
“About
you not having it better than me.”
Ezri
tried to find a blunter way to put it. “I didn’t choose my life.”
“Join
the club, sweetcakes.”
“But
... but ...” Ezri sputtered.
“Take
it easy, doll. Sounds like you’re having trouble getting started.”
“I’ve
heard you sing, Vic. You’re good.”
Vic
nodded thoughtfully. “Maybe not as good as Frank, but I won’t give you an
argument on that one.”
“Which
makes me think you enjoy what you do.”
This
time, Vic’s smile transformed his face. “Oh, yeah. To be up at that mike,
belting out pure gold, holding that audience in the palm of my hand. ...” To
Ezri, Vic seemed to be staring away at someplace, sometime, other than the Young
Electric Sign Company junkyard. “What can I tell you? Like the man said, ‘baby,
it’s witchcraft.’ ”
“Exactly.
So at the end of the day, no matter how you got here, is there anything else
you can imagine that would be more fulfilling than being a nightclub singer in
1962 Las Vegas?”
Vic
smiled at her, clutched his chest just above his holographic heart, and said,
“Ya got me.” Then he took on a more serious expression. “Which makes me think,
there’s something else, somewhere else, you’d rather be.”
Ezri looked
off at the surrounding signs, none of them fulfilling their functions anymore,
no longer pointing the way to anywhere. She couldn’t believe she was having
this conversation with anyone, let alone a hologram. But then, maybe the fact
that Vic was a hologram was exactly why she could have this conversation
with him.
“That’s
the problem,” Ezri said softly “I can’t answer that. I ... I never got a chance
to find out what I wanted. Not on my own. Not before I was joined.”
Ezri
could see that Vic, whatever algorithms fueled his awareness and his
personality, appeared to sense the sudden serious mood that had enveloped her,
drawing her into her own personal wormhole of despair.
The
hologram sat down beside her. The metal box creaked a bit under his illusory weight.
When he spoke, his voice was softer, more deliberate. “I gotta tell you, I’m not up on all your fancy
twenty-fourth-century Flash Gordon, Buck Rogers atomic-ray rocketship
you-name-its.”
Ezri
stared at him blankly, having no idea what he was saying, but trusting he’d
mention something familiar eventually.
“But
the one thing I do know,” Vic said kindly, “is that this being ‘joined’
megillah, it’s not something that sneaks up on you, is it? I remember Jadzia
talking about it once. Training for years. Selection committees. Only one out
of a thousand qualifies, and even then that don’t guarantee you a place at the
table. Isn’t that how it really goes, dollface?”
Ezri
rubbed at her eyes, wondering why she didn’t just call it a night. She could go
back to her quarters—or to Julian’s—have some tea, fall asleep, and when she
woke up, Julian would be there beside her, to take all these questions from
her.
But
that would be quitting, too, she
thought.
“You’re
half right, Vic,” she said quietly. She was dimly aware of tears building up in
her eyes, though she had no idea why. “That’s how it goes for every Trill ...
except me.”
She
made an effort to smile up at him. The hologram’s silver hair was almost
luminous in the bright lights of the slipper, as if his head were surrounded by
a glowing nimbus of radiance. The image seemed to evoke some faint echo of
recognition in her, something or someone or even a symbol from one of the other
lives her symbiont had led. But she couldn’t bring up anything more concrete.
For an unsettling moment, it almost felt to Ezri as if the Dax part of her were
gone, or asleep, or somehow standing back from what she was doing now, as if
this moment belonged only to her. Could belong only to her.
“I
don’t get it,” Vic said. “What makes you so different?”
Such
a simple question, Ezri
thought. With such a simple answer.
But it
still kept her up at night, staring into the endless darkness of the ceiling,
whether Julian was beside her or not.
She
realized then there was no holding back. She had gone this far with the
hologram—no, with Vic—that she might as well see it through to the end.
“I
never wanted to be joined,” she told him haltingly, the very words a sacrilege
against everything her world and her people held dear.
Vic
nodded slowly, knowingly. “Riiight. Now I remember. When Jadzia bought it. The
symbiont heading home. Something goes wrong. It has to be joined or it’s lights
out forever. And you were the only Trill on the ship.”
Ezri
opened her mouth to give her rehearsed answer, the one that had been drilled
into her by Starfleet and the Symbiosis Commission and by Dax and all the
previous hosts now sharing her consciousness. But the words wouldn’t come. Not
here. Not now.
“I wish
... I wish it had been that simple,” she said, her voice almost a whisper.
She saw
Vic study her, intrigued, and his expression made Ezri smile. Isn’t that why they were here having this discussion?
Artificial being and joined Trill, both wrestling with their respective
confusion?
“You
mean,” Vic said, “that’s not how it happened?”
“No,”
Ezri said. “That’s exactly how it happened. But ... that’s not all that
happened.”
For
long moments, hologram and Trill held each other’s gaze. Then Vic reached into
his back pocket, pulled out a flat silver flask, and twisted open its stopper.
“I’ve got a crazy feeling we’re going to be here a while,” he said. He held out
the flask to Ezri. She took it, smelled some kind of Earth brandy she couldn’t
identify. Took a swallow and felt it burn so far down her throat Dax shivered
in her abdominal pocket.
“Badda
bing,” Vic said, as if he had felt the symbiont move himself. Then he took a
swallow of his own and moved closer to Ezri so they were side by side. He
sealed the flask, put it behind them, then slipped an arm around her as if to
make sure his jacket was as snug as it could be.
Ezri
didn’t protest, didn’t feel the least awkward, enjoyed in fact the feeling of
inner warmth from the brandy and the security of Vic’s arm around her. She
leaned her head against his shoulder, looking up at those few stars bright
enough to outshine the silver slipper, alien stars that reminded her just how
lost she was.
“So
what’s your story?” Vic asked.
Ezri
laughed, feeling strangely better than she had for months. “Stories,
That’s more like it.”
Vic
gave her a squeeze, protective, nothing more, but just enough. “Not their stories,
doll. Your story.”
“My
story,” Ezri said. “My story.” That first word sounded odd, because the
way she said it, she wasn’t talking about Ezri Dax, she was talking about Ezri
Tigan. The person she used to be before she became ... the persons she was ...
were ... damn these pronouns, she thought.
“We’ve
got all night,” Vic said soothingly. “As long as you need. As long as you
want.”
Ezri
snuggled in closer to Vic’s broad shoulder, letting her mind drift back, almost
eighteen months earlier, to one of her first Starfleet assignments, and her
first glimpse of Deep Space 9. ...
“I was
on a starship,” Ezri said.
“Imagine
that,” Vic told her.
“A
starship named Destiny. ...”
And as
easily as that, the past came to life, and—
—in the
main shuttlebay of the Starship Destiny, Ensign Ezri Tigan pushed her
long dark hair from her eyes and peered through the slightly fogged viewport of
the medical transport pod. Inside, bathed in billows of inert nitrogen and the
purple mist of Trill ocean water, the glistening brown, sluglike shape of a
symbiont, the life-form that was the driving force behind Trill civilization,
the shining ideal for which all Trill children were raised to aspire to serve,
pulsated slowly.
Ezri
screwed up her face. “Ewww. That’s so gross.”
Beside
her, Ensign Brinner Finok jabbed his elbow into Ezri’s side. “Zee! That’s Dax.
One of the greatest. Show some respect.”
Ezri
grinned at Brinner, her delight at teasing him multiplying as she saw his
cheeks flush until they were almost as dark as the intricate curlicues of Trill
spots that ran up both sides of his high forehead. He was so serious, it was
obvious he needed her to remind him that life held other possibilities than a
constant devotion to duty. Last night, she considered she had done an
especially good job at diverting his mind from his work. His cheeks had flushed
then, too, and as if Brinner also remembered how they had passed their evening,
he now allowed his typically intent expression to soften with a self-conscious
smile.
It
didn’t last, though. Suddenly, he reacted to something he saw from the corner
of his eye and his smile vanished as he snapped to attention like a first-year
cadet.
Ezri
turned to see what Brinner saw, and instantly stepped back from the transport
pod and the two security officers who flanked it. Beyond the pod, the Destiny’s
chief medical officer, Dr. T’pek, stepped down from the DS9 runabout,
holding her medical tricorder before her like a protective sword. The tricorder
was aimed directly at the pod, as if its contents were the most valuable cargo
ever to come aboard.
With
everyone’s attention on the tall, startlingly thin Vulcan doctor, Ezri couldn’t
resist. “It’s a big ugly worm,” she whispered to Brinner, “and you’ll never
catch me with one of them in my pocket.” She jabbed her own elbow into
Brinner’s side for emphasis, then squared her shoulders and smoothed her
jacket. Someone else was coming out of the runabout behind the doctor, and he wasn’t wearing a Starfleet
uniform. Its design looked Bajoran.
“They’d
never pick you, anyway,” Brinner whispered back, still keeping his eyes locked
dead ahead. “Triple-niner.”
Ezri
snorted, but didn’t take offense at Brinner’s insult. She didn’t care if she
was among the ninety-nine-point-nine percent of the Trill population unfit to
be joined. She didn’t even care if she was among the one-tenth of one percent
who were fit. She wanted no part of her planet’s parasitic brain
vampires and had never even bothered to fill out her standard selection profile
for the Symbiosis Commission. But before she could come up with a suitably
insulting rejoinder for Brinner, Ezri felt her throat tense up as she
recognized what was coming through the runabout door.
A
Founder.
Ezri looked
from the eerily half-formed humanoid face of the changeling to the security
guards by the pod and wondered why they didn’t draw their weapons. There was a
war on. The shapeshifting Founders and their Jem’Hadar had brought near ruin to
the Federation. How could Captain Raymer permit the enemy to board the vessel?
Why wasn’t Dr. T’pek offering any protest? Why weren’t the changeling detection
protocols being followed? How ... Ezri’s cascade of questions came to an end as
she saw the Founder place his hand, almost affectionately, on the surface of
the transport pod.
“There
... the symbiont remains in stable condition,” Dr. T’pek said to the
changeling. She even showed him
her tricorder readings, as if he were a colleague. “The delay has not
compromised it at all.”
The
changeling looked faintly annoyed, but Ezri wasn’t sure if that was an accurate
reflection of his mood because his features were so alien and unreadable to
her. “As I said, Doctor, Jadzia had no difficulty using transporters. The Dax
symbiont could have been beamed onto this ship and you could have been on your
way an hour ago. If you hadn’t insisted on using the runabout.”
Ezri
glanced sideways at Brinner, trying to gauge his reaction to this surreal
scene. Not only was the enemy onboard Destiny, he was actually
criticizing Dr. T’pek. But Brinner’s attention was still riveted on the
transport pod and the symbiont within. Typical, Ezri thought. She knew
Brinner was desperate to be a tenth-percenter. But given the waiting list at
the Symbiosis Commission, she also knew this was as close to a symbiont as he’d
be likely to get in the next twenty years.
T’pek
maintained her patience with the changeling, but since the doctor was a Vulcan,
Ezri could expect no less. “Constable, I do not have to tell you what a
valuable asset Dax is to Starfleet, and to the Federation. As Jadzia Dax, it
was on the front lines of the war, and we cannot risk losing that knowledge or
experience. Some symbionts have unusual reactions to the beaming process, and
with Dax already suffering from some type of energy shock and host-death trauma
syndrome, an hour’s delay did not present an unacceptable risk in relation to
what a transporter reaction might have triggered. It was the logical thing to
do.”
The
changeling with the unlikely rank of “constable” sighed deeply, then patted the
transport pod. “Dax was more than an asset, Doctor. It ... she ... was a
friend.”
“I
understand,” T’pek said with equal parts respect and firmness. “And we will
have your friend on Trill in two weeks. More than enough time for
recuperation and a new joining.”
The
changeling nodded, then turned back to the runabout, without once looking
around the shuttlebay, as if nothing on this ship was worth his attention
except for the worm. Ezri didn’t know why, but it seemed obvious to her that at
least there was one changeling who was allied with the Federation, for whatever
reason.
Immediately
after the changeling had boarded the runabout, T’pek had the security guards
file off, carrying the transport pod with antigravs. Then, with a curt nod
indicating that Brinner and Ezri were to follow, the doctor fell in behind the
pod, her flashing tricorder held in operating position.
Just
before leaving the shuttlebay with the others, Ezri looked over her shoulder to
see the runabout slip through the bay’s atmospheric forcefield into space. Far
beyond it, like a glittering ornament silhouetted against a frozen spray of
fiery sparks, she saw Deep Space 9. Each docking pylon was mated with a
ship—Federation, Bajoran, even two Klingon cruisers. Other ships from other
systems kept station nearby, as if DS9 were the center of a whirlpool, an
island of calm in a storm-tossed sea.
Too bad we didn’t have a chance to visit, Ezri
thought with real regret. With the war,
there was no telling how soon the Destiny might get this close to the
front lines again. She resigned herself to the fact that, like so many of the
sights she had seen in her brief time with Starfleet, this first glimpse of
Deep Space 9 might also be her last. Then the shuttlebay personnel door slipped
shut, and she half-stumbled as she hurried to catch up with Brinner, now
marching dutifully in Dr. T’pek’s wake.
Even
before Ezri reached the others, she was wondering why the wide corridor was so
quiet. By the time she fell into step with Brinner, she had realized the
answer. They were the only people in the wide passageway.
“Where
is everyone?” she whispered to her fellow ensign.
But
before Brinner could answer, T’pek spoke. “We are now in security condition
alpha.”
The
party halted before a turbolift door as T’pek announced their arrival into her
communicator badge. Ezri and Brinner exchanged a silent, questioning glance.
Ezri knew that security condition alpha meant that sections of the Destiny had
been sealed off from the rest of the ship by blast doors and security
forcefields. From training drills, she knew that alpha conditions were for
preventing lethal biological contamination, or escorting beings so critical to
the Federation that their loss would cause irreparable damage, like the
president of the Federation Council.
As the
turbolift door slid open, Ezri murmured to Brinner, “Is that thing really that
important?”
T’pek
turned to her. “Ensign, the Dax symbiont has just served six years on one of
the most important outposts involved in the war with the Dominion. As a
Starfleet officer, it knows the latest codes, the latest battle plans, the
latest strategies. It knows our strengths. It knows our weaknesses. It knows
the same about key personnel in Starfleet Command and the Klingon Defense
Force. How would you have us transport it back to your homeworld? On a pleasure
cruiser?”
Though
the Vulcan’s tone had not varied in the slightest, Ezri knew she had been
severely reprimanded, and like Brinner she unconsciously snapped to attention,
eyes straight ahead, an errant cadet once again. “No, ma’am,” she said.
During
T’pek’s even-voiced tirade, Franklin Solon, the ship’s surgeon, had stepped
from the turbolift to the chief medical officer’s side. Now T’pek turned away
from Ezri to hand her tricorder to the surgeon.
“All
life signs are stable for now,” T’pek reported. “But host-death syndrome is
known to cause rapid reversals without warning.”
Solon
studied the tricorder display with a frown. “I understand. I’ve been familiarizing
myself with the necessary emergency requirements.” He looked up from the
tricorder, checked out Brinner, then Ezri, his large dark eyes reflecting the
tricorder’s multicolored flashing lights. “Which one?” he asked.
“We
might not have a choice,” T’pek answered.
Ezri
felt her spots pucker. What were the doctors talking about?
“You
may proceed,” T’pek said to Solon. “Keep a fall implantation team on standby.
And keep the sub-space link to Trill open.”
Solon
nodded brusquely, then stepped back into the turbolift with the security guards
and the transport pod. “See you in sickbay,” he said.
Then
the doors closed, leaving Ezri and Brinner alone with T’pek in the otherwise
deserted corridor.
Here
it comes, Ezri thought. She
had a terrible feeling she was about to find out why Dr. T’pek had requested
the only two Trill on board to meet her in the main shuttle-bay.
The
Vulcan pulled a padd from her medical smock, checked a text display on it, then
stared at Ezri. “Ensign Tigan, your medical records are incomplete.”
Ezri’s
startled first reaction was to want to laugh. Four years at Starfleet Academy
had left her feeling like a medical experiment. She had been scanned,
genetically decoded, retropulsed, and biolfiltered until she had decided her
visits to Starfleet Medical were really covert training simulations, like some
perverse, psychological variation of the Kobayashi Maru. If there was a
cell in her body that Starfleet didn’t have a blueprint for, then it had
to be one she had grown in the last five days.
“I’m
sorry, Doctor,” Ezri said, “but I don’t understand.”
With
long and delicate fingers, T’pek held out the padd so Ezri could read it.
“There is no symbiosis evaluation.”
Ezri
nodded agreement. “No, ma’am, there isn’t.”
“Is it
not law that all Trill are to submit to preliminary screening tests on their
twelfth birthdays?”
Ezri’s
eyes widened. She knew Starfleet was thorough, but surely it wasn’t going to go
back to her twelfth birthday to find flaws in her record. “It’s not really a
law, ma’am. More like ... a custom.”
“That’s
right, Doctor,” Brinner said quickly, and Ezri was glad of his support. “First
Screening is a cultural celebration, similar to a human bar mitzvah, or a
Klingon bloodkill. There’s no actual legal requirement for anyone to take part.
It’s just that everyone does.” He glanced at Ezri. “Almost everyone.”
“Ah,”
T’pek said. “So the records are not incomplete. You simply chose not to undergo
screening.”
“Yes,
ma’am.”
“Why?”
On one
hand, Ezri was tired of that question more than any other she had been asked,
second only to her mother’s constant refrain of, Why leave home to join
Starfleet? The answer to that second question was that joining Starfleet was
the perfect excuse to leave home. And, with luck, to not go back for
years. The answer to the first question was far more complex. She and Brinner
had spent hours talking about it over the past month. And Ezri still wasn’t
anywhere close to having explained all her thoughts and feelings to him.
So for
now, she chose the easy way out.
“I
don’t wish to be joined, ma’am.”
Ezri
braced herself for the inevitable questions that would follow. She expected
they would be especially brutal coming from the logic-honed mind of a Vulcan. How
can you make such a profound decision that will affect your entire life at so
young an age? How can you not aspire to fulfill the biological
destiny of your species? How can you disappoint your parents? Or, Ezri’s
favorite, What dark secrets are you hiding that you don’t wish a symbiont to
know?
But
T’pek asked none of those. Instead, she called up another text display on the
padd, then addressed Brinner.
“Ensign
Finok, your medical records do include a preliminary symbiosis evaluation, and
several follow-ups.”
“Yes,
ma’am.”
“Logic
suggests you do wish to be joined.”
“Yes,
ma’am.”
Ezri
tried not to think any less of the young man who had so recently become her
lover. What chance did he have for true independence when the whole of Trill
society was dedicated to brainwashing its children into believing there could
be no higher goal than sacrificing their individuality to a parasitic race of
slugs?
“Very
well,” T’pek said. “You are to report to sickbay until further notice. I will
have Captain Raymer excuse you from all other duty until we reach Trill.”
“I ...
don’t understand, ma’am.” Brinner looked nervously at Ezri, then back to the
doctor. “Are you saying I’m to be joined with Dax?”
Ezri
stared at Brinner. The question was ridiculous. Even if a Trill were
biochemically suitable for the joining process, years of training and preparation
were necessary before the procedure could be undertaken.
But the
Vulcan surprised her and Brinner. “Unlikely,” T’pek said. “However, in the
event the symbiont’s condition worsens, we must stand ready to perform an
emergency joining procedure. And, since Ensign Tigan has not seen fit to have
her suitability for joining assessed, you, it would appear, are the only
suitable Trill on the ship.”
“B-but
...” Brinner stammered, “I haven’t been trained.”
T’pek
raised an eyebrow. “But Dax has. Eight times. Report to sickbay at once.”
By now,
Brinner’s face was so pale his spots seemed black. He looked at Ezri, but
neither spoke. There was too much to say, and no time to say it.
T’pek
stepped to the side and the turbolift door opened.
Brinner
walked inside. Like a condemned man entering a Trikon brainwipe chamber, Ezri
thought. Then T’pek took her place in the lift beside Brinner and gave Ezri
another curt nod. “I have no further need of you, Ensign. Carry on.”
“Yes,
ma’am,” Ezri mumbled, then watched Brinner until the ’lift doors closed and she
heard the car speed away.
Ezri
remained motionless in the silent corridor after that, remembering once again
how much she loathed the worms, and startling herself by how much she was going
to miss Brinner.
“I wish
I was a Vulcan,” Ezri finally said to herself. Life would be so much simpler
without emotions. And with that defiant wish playing in her troubled mind, she
returned to her quarters, alone.
* * *
By the
third day outward bound from Deep Space 9, Ezri worked up her courage enough to
slip into sickbay after duty hours.
She had
checked with the ship’s computer that Brinner Finok was not under quarantine,
so technically, she reassured herself, she wasn’t doing anything wrong. She was
simply visiting a friend. A friend who had not responded to any of the notes
she had sent through the Destiny’s internal messaging system.
At
ship’s midnight, the main sickbay clinic was deserted. Ezri could see one of
the medical department’s biotechnicians in his office, working on a desk padd.
But other than the bright spill of light through that small cubicle’s
transparent wall, the main light levels were dim, and the only sound was the
hum of the air circulators.
Ezri
walked quickly across the clinic to the closed door to Isolation Room 2. The
biohazard seal wasn’t active, so again she told herself that she was not
breaking any crucial protocols.
Beside
it, the seal for the door to Isolation Room 1 was active. That room
contained the apparatus for identifying changelings. Only Captain Raymer, Dr.
T’pek, and the Destiny’s chief of security had access to Isolation Room
1, and then, only when two of the three of them were present at the same time.
Ezri
herself had been randomly screened four times in the past month. She had heard
that some command staff were checked every day. Such vigilance was the price of
war, she knew. And since the test was simple—just a quick pinprick and the
extraction of a single drop of
blood—she had never felt indignant about it. But let the Symbiosis Commission ever
try to examine a single follicle of hair to assess her as possible joining
material, and she’d—
“This
facility is off-limits!”
Those
were the first words Brinner said to her as the isolation door slid open to
reveal him standing by the locked-down transport pod containing the Dax
symbiont.
The
young ensign’s formal words and attitude were so unexpected, that Ezri ignored
them. She entered the small isolation room, holding up the present she had
brought—a fragile, single-crystal bottle of samsit, just like the one
they had shared on their fifth date, which was the first date on which they
hadn’t quite gotten around to leaving Ezri’s quarters.
“Brinner,
are you all right?”
“I’m
fine,” he said stiffly. “But you do have to leave.”
Brinner
stepped in front of the pod, his back to the symbiont, facing Ezri as if he was
about to challenge her in combat.
Ezri
knew what was wrong, tried to correct the situation.
“I’m
not here to argue,” she said. “What you want to do with your life, that’s your
decision.”
For the
briefest moment, Ezri almost had the feeling that Brinner didn’t know what she
was talking about. But then he seemed to relax.
“I’m
sorry,” he said. “And I ... appreciate your trust. But you really do have to
leave. I’m ... supposed to be under medical quarantine.”
Ezri
moved closer to her friend, trying to coax out his playful side. She knew he
wasn’t under quarantine. He was just using that as an excuse. “Good, that means
no one else will come in to ... disturb us.”
“Ensign,
please ...” Brinner said. He was actually pressing back against the pod as if
trying to get as far away from her as possible.
“Ensign?”
Ezri frowned. “My, aren’t we formal.”
“Ezri,”
Brinner said, as if correcting himself.
At
that, Ezri stopped two meters from Brinner. She felt her own face flush, even
as Brinner seemed to maintain complete equanimity.
“Ezri?
We’re back to that? As if last week didn’t happen?” After that first night
they had spent together, close in each other’s arms, Ezri had told Brinner how
her younger brother had first called her Zee, when he was learning to speak and
“Ezri” had been too much of a challenge. Ever since then, it had remained her
brother’s special name for her, and had become the special name she shared only
rarely, and only with those, like Brinner, whom she had welcomed into her
heart.
So for
Brinner now to call her “Ezri” was a repudiation of what they had shared, of
what she had believed they had come to mean to each other.
“I’m
... sorry ...” Brinner said defensively, and though he seemed to be upset, his
cheeks remained pale. “I ... don’t know what else I can say. ...”
Males,
Ezri thought. “So don’t,”
she told him as she closed the distance between them. She brought her hands to
Brinner’s face, carefully holding the samsit crystal bottle between two
fingers of one hand as she used
the other to caress his cheek. Then she leaned even closer and kissed him just
as she had that first night.
Brinner
shrank back from her but that only made her more determined. She held him more
closely, kissed him more forcefully.
Still,
he made no response.
Ezri
went for broke, delicately biting Banner’s lower lip the way she knew he could
not resist. Then teasingly, she pulled back on it, forcing him to finally draw
closer to her, one way or another.
But all
he did was cringe, as if what she did was unspeakable.
Ezri
didn’t have to be a Betazoid to feel the revulsion that filled him.
For one
brief moment of emotional torment of which her mother would be proud, Ezri gave
in to the realization that she had somehow turned from Brinner’s lover into a
repulsive thing he couldn’t bear to touch. It was as if a phaser had fired full
power into her heart.
But
then, her self-respect came to the fore. This wasn’t her problem. This
was Brinner’s. He was the one who was behaving reprehensibly. He was the one
who had changed.
And
then that last word blazed in her mind like a general quarters siren.
Changed.
Her
eyes widened in horror and because she was so young, so inexperienced, she said
the one thing she should not say in this situation.
The
truth.
“You
...” she whispered in shock. “... you’re not Brinner. ...”
The
hands of the man—the creature she caressed struck her own hands away
from his face.
The
fragile bottle of samsit shattered in the violence of his action, and as
if watching a slow-motion training simulation, Ezri saw in perfect, horrific
detail how the laser-sharp shards of samsit crystal sliced into the
thing’s palm, spraying dark droplets of blood.
Dark
droplets that shimmered into golden spheres of elemental changeling flesh
before they reached the deck.
At
last, Ezri screamed.
At
last, half-falling, half-running, she pushed back from the monster she had
kissed, screaming even louder as the changeling’s arms snaked after her,
writhing through the air like tentacles, sliding and slithering around her body
like living water, to tighten around her neck and cover her face in a golden
gelatinous mass that seeped up her nostrils, into her mouth and down her
throat, strangling her from the outside, choking her from the inside, until her
world turned black and all she saw was a spray of fiery sparks like those that
encompassed Deep Space 9.
In
those final moments, all she felt was the horrible, unending realization of how
wasted her short life had been. The heart-wrenching loss of it seemed to last
forever. ...
Seconds,
minutes, millennia later, a brilliant, blinding light exploded in Ezri’s
vision, drawing her forward as the
voice of the Creator of All Things asked, “Are you all right? Ensign?! Answer
me!”
For a
moment, Ezri was bemused by the fact that her Starfleet rank had followed her
into the afterlife. Then she opened her eyes and realized that the Creator of
All Things bore a striking resemblance to Dr. Franklin Solon.
“Are
you all right, Ensign?”
Ezri
sat up from the diagnostic bed, coughing hoarsely.
“Do you
know where you are?” another voice asked.
Ezri
blinked to see a bald human doctor standing at the other side of her bed. It
took her a moment to recognize him as the Destiny’s Emergency Medical
Hologram.
The
realization that an emergency existed was enough to clear her mind completely.
“Sickbay,”
she said. Her throat hurt but she went on. “U.S.S. Destiny.” Captain
Raymer was beside Dr. Solon so she felt that was the most likely location of
this facility. “There was a changeling,” she gasped.
“We
know,” Raymer said. She ran a hand through her short gray hair. Her eyes were
tinged with dark circles. Her pale cheek was smudged with soot, as if she had
been in a firefight. “A biotech heard your screams. We were able to get the security
fields up in time. We got it.”
Ezri
sighed with relief, then shivered. “It looked just like Brinner.”
Solon
nodded. “That’s what we concluded. But the security monitors were disabled throughout sickbay so we couldn’t be
sure.” His dark eyes kept looking up at the diagnostic readouts behind Ezri,
and she was suddenly aware she was wearing only a flimsy blue medical gown.
“Am I
all right?”
“You’d
better be,” Solon said.
Ezri
didn’t like the sound of that. “Why?” she asked. She looked again at the EMH,
then around at the other grim medical technicians surrounding her bed. “Where’s
Dr. T’pek?”
“That’s
how the changeling came aboard,” Raymer said. She held up her hands in a
gesture of helplessness. Ezri saw one of them was bandaged, a few spots of
blood showing. “She was in charge of changeling detection. ... If not
for you. ...”
Ezri
noticed some of the techs were also wearing bandages. She could smell smoke in
the air. “Has something happened?”
“The
changeling had a communications device. When we cornered it, the ship was
attacked by Jem’Hadar. You’ve been out a couple of hours.”
Ezri’s
mind was spinning. She felt as if she had been given some kind of drug. But
before she could ask anything more, she heard a life-support alarm sound from
another room.
A nurse
ran to Dr. Solon. “We’re losing it, Doctor!”
Raymer
suddenly took Ezri’s hand. Ezri stared at her blankly.
“I’ve
read your file,” the captain said.
Ezri
lurched as she was lifted on the bed’s surface by two technicians with antigravs. Everyone
walked at her side, following her toward the second room. Technicians shouted
out medical orders.
“I know
how you feel about symbionts,” Raymer continued, her hand still gripping
Ezri’s.
Ezri
peered ahead through her entourage. Saw two medical tables side by side in the
operating theater. One was empty. The other was not.
“No
...” she gasped, not willing to believe what was about to happen. “Where’s
Brinner?! Brinner wanted this! It’s his dream!”
“We
don’t know,” Solon told her. “The changeling probably killed him, just like it
killed the real Dr. T’pek.”
“Brinner,”
Ezri sobbed as the technicians locked her bed into place beside the table that
held the symbiont.
“I’m
sorry, Ensign, truly,” Raymer said. “But as of now, you are the only Trill on
the Destiny. The only one who can save Dax’s life.”
“Please
...” Ezri whispered as the technicians pressed on her shoulders, compelling her
to lie down. She felt a draft as her gown was pulled aside to expose her
abdominal pocket.
The
life-support alarm beeped incessantly. Ezri felt hot tears run down her cheeks.
Raymer’s hand was rigid in her own. Everything was happening too fast.
“Ensign,
listen to me,” the captain said. She leaned over Ezri so there was nothing else
in Ezri’s line of sight. “I’ve spoken with the Symbiosis Commission. With the
damage we’ve taken, there’s no way we can get you to new facilities within
ninety-three hours. You know what that means.”
Ezri
did. “The joining ... will be permanent. ...” She felt her stomach contract as
something cool was sprayed along the edge of her pouch. She wanted to vomit but
whatever medication she had been given prevented anything from happening.
“That’s
right,” Raymer said. “So the Commission is firm. No joining can be forced.
Whatever happens next, it is your choice. Do you understand? You have to
make the decision. The Dax symbiont has less than thirty minutes to live. You
have your whole life. But whatever you decide, you have to decide now, one
way or another.”
Ezri
turned her head, looked at all the people who surrounded her, staring, waiting,
just as her mother had watched her in school plays and on sports days. The
pressure. The waiting for failure. The need to be something different. The need
to get away.
“What
is your decision, Ensign?”
“I’m a
Starfleet officer,” Ezri said faintly, almost unable to speak. “You could order
me.” That would be the easy way out.
Raymer
squeezed Ezri’s hand so tightly Ezri flinched. “Because you are a
Starfleet officer, I shouldn’t have to order you. Now, Ensign, what is your
decision?”
Ezri
closed her eyes. The thoughts, the fears, the memories that came to her at that
moment would take her years to sort through, to order, to comprehend. But
somewhere, deep inside, one inarguable fact from her past could not be denied.
She was
a Trill.
And one,
inescapable realization from her present still burned in her consciousness with
all the intensity of a dying thought.
Until
now, her life had been wasted.
By all
rights, Brinner should be here now.
By all
rights, the changeling should have killed her, not him.
Somehow,
she had been given a second chance.
How
could she let that chance be wasted, too?
Ezri
opened her eyes. “Do it,” she said softly, regretting those words even as she
knew she must say them.
The
eyes of her captain burned into hers. “Are you sure?” she asked.
To her
eternal amazement, for the first time in her life, Ezri Tigan was.
Beneath
alien stars, in the cool of the Las Vegas desert, Ezri Dax withdrew her hand
from beneath Vic Fontaine’s sports coat to wipe a single tear from her face.
“Man oh
man,” Vic said quietly. “That was it?”
“Not
quite,” Ezri said. “It took about fifteen minutes to prep me. I had never done
any of the stretching exercises, things like that. All I remember was poor Dr.
Solon reciting everything he had read about joining over the past few days. I
think he was more upset than I was.”
“Fifteen
minutes?” Vic said. “Instead of years of training? And then what, they just
plug the slug into the pocket and ... that’s it?”
“No.
That’s just ... just the beginning,” Ezri explained. She retreated into silence
as she remembered those first tendrils of connection, that first tentative
contact with the mind—with all the minds of Dax. Slow it was, gentle,
almost shy, until the pathways were in place, the nerve bundles fused, until,
as if she were poised on the edge of an infinitely tall cliff, she had heard
the first unforgettable, thrilling whisper of a thought not her own, welcoming
her to an existence inexpressible to a single mind.
“Just
the beginning,” Vic repeated. Ezri could feel him slowly shake his head. “So
then what happened?”
Ezri
settled in more closely against Vic. She was reaching the point at which words
could no longer express what had happened to her. That explosion of knowledge,
of awareness, of experience ... it was still overwhelming to her, more than a
year later.
“What
happened next,” she said, “was ... everything, Vic. Eight lives and three
hundred years of everything, all at once.”
And as
she saw Vic stare down wonderingly into her eyes, Ezri at last understood that,
for now, her story had come to an end.
It was
time to tell her stories ...
“What is a person
if not the sum of her memories?”
—Lela Dax
“Facets”
Kristine Kathryn Rusch is the only person in the science
fiction field to win the prestigious Hugo Award for her editing and for her
writing. She has also won the Asimov’s Readers Choice Award, the Ellery Queen
Readers Choice Award, and the SF Age Readers Choice Award (all in the same
year!). In addition, she’s won the World Fantasy Award, the John W. Campbell
Award, and the Locus Award, and been nominated for every possible sf award.
In the United States, she has published more
than fifty novels under a variety of pen names. Her books have been translated
into many languages and reprinted worldwide. Her most recent novel is The
Disappeared from Roc.
She lives on the Oregon Coast, with her
husband, Dean Wesley Smith, and their collection of cats.
Jill Sherwin is the author of Quotable Star Trek; The
Definitive Star Trek Trivia Book, Volume I; and The Definitive Star Trek
Trivia Book, Volume II. She has worked as a writers’ assistant on the
television series Star Trek: Deep Space Nine and Gene Roddenberry’s
Andromeda. She sold the story that became the second season Andromeda
episode: “Be All My Sins Remembered.”
Kristine Kathryn
Rusch
[based on a
concept: by Jill Sherwin]
UNTIL
SHE WAS joined, Lela never dreamed of space. She dreamed of leading,
of a life dedicated to the service of Trill. But she never dreamed of space.
How
strange, then, that the Dax symbiont had never seen the stars, and yet it was
the dream of stars that the symbiont had imparted to Lela.
Trill
had pilots who flew into space, of course—they had warp capability after
all—but only a few were authorized to venture outside of Trill’s orbit. She
would never be one of them. She’d been tested long ago, and lacked the
dexterity, the eye-hand coordination, that a good pilot needed.
Her
future was in politics. She had known that before she was joined. And she’d had
great success: She was one of the first women elected to Trill’s ruling
council, and she was currently the only woman in that august body. The three that preceded her had
retired long ago.
Yet she
felt twinges, longings, that were all centered on the stars.
She
never spoke of those longings, but sometimes, after particularly rough council
sessions, she went to the observatory that was attached to the planetary
spaceflight center. The center housed space traffic control, the controls for
the planetary defense grid, and the finest observatory on Trill, one that was
in constant use by the best scientists on the planet.
Usually
the space center was quiet, a place for reflection. She often sat in the
observatory and looked at the star charts, or the projections from the
telescopes that showed up on the screens. Sometimes she spoke with center
personnel, and sometimes she just watched.
It gave
her perspective, perspective she sometimes needed when dealing with the other
council members. She was still newly elected and they had yet to take her
seriously. They had listened—and sneered—at her campaign slogans. She had said
she spoke for those who lived only one lifetime—the unjoined, mostly—because
she had only lived one so far, and she said she spoke for the newly joined,
because she and her symbiont were both new to this. The other members of the
council had been joined long before, and seemed to forget, she claimed, that
the majority of Trill’s population experienced but a single lifetime before
their memories were lost forever.
Lela
found it ironic that her biggest crisis, both legislative and personal, began
at the space center.
* * *
She
arrived one night to find the space center in chaos. Scientists filled the
observatory—the large room was so full, she could barely squeeze inside. It was
hot and stuffy and smelled faintly of sweat. It took a lot of bodies to make a
room that large smell of sweat.
She was
a small woman compared with most Trills and she had to push her way to the
front of the group, excusing herself, apologizing, before she could see the
screen to know what was going on.
A ship
appeared before her. It was long and graceful, slender and glittery white.
There seemed to be no portholes, no obvious engines, and no real place of entry.
Just a long beautiful ship that reminded Lela of a feather.
“What
is it?” she asked the scientist next to her.
He
shook his head. “It went into orbit around Trill a few hours ago.”
And no
one had notified the council. She sighed. That was already a problem. But she
couldn’t seem to move either. She had never seen an alien ship, although she’d
seen holos of the Vulcan craft that made first contact.
This
was clearly not a Vulcan ship. A shiver ran down her spine at the
thought. She had been just a girl during the Vulcan first contact crisis, but
she remembered it vividly. Trill was horribly divided over the idea of any
alien contact. After the Vulcans made their first landing and proposed an
exchange of cultural information as a prelude to some kind of lasting
friendship, the infighting in the council and among the people of Trill was
almost frightening.
There
was a fear among the Trill that any aliens posed a potential threat to the
symbionts, who were fragile, defenseless creatures. Lela had heard, during her
years of preparation for public service, that the contact with the Vulcans had
led to a lot of changes in the government’s policies concerning the symbionts.
Even the access to the pools was guarded now.
There
had been no other contact with aliens except the Vulcans. Trill continued to
keep itself isolated, rebuffing any attempt at contact by aliens entering the
system.
But no
ship had actually assumed orbit of Trill since the Vulcans had come.
“Has
anyone contacted the ship?” she asked the scientist beside her. He shrugged.
Then
Sitlas saw her. He was a slender man with dark spots that ringed his face and
made him look exotic. “Lela,” he said.
She
made her way toward him. He was an older, unjoined Trill, but he ran the space
center with an efficiency that could not be matched.
“Sitlas,”
she said. “What’s been happening?”
“We’ve
activated the defense grid,” he said. “And we’ve sent the message.”
The
message. It was a compromise that the council had made after the infighting
that resulted from the Vulcans’ first visit. The message stated simply that
Trill did not want contact with outsiders, and that all alien ships were asked
to bypass the planet.
“Any
response?” Lela asked.
“Not
yet,” he said. “We don’t even know if they can respond. We’ve sent the message in all known languages.”
She
looked back at the ship. She knew that the automated defense grid was
monitoring it, as were dozens of large telescopes all over the planet. Yet the
ship seemed remarkably unconcerned.
“You’d
think if it got the message, it would leave,” she said.
He
nodded.
“Sitlas,”
someone said from the main control room. “We need you.”
“Let’s
go,” he said to her. He had to ask her to come, she realized. She was the only
government representative in the building. She followed him into the main
control room.
It was
smaller than the observatory, except for the screen which covered one wall. The
ship looked even lighter and more feathery here, the glitter of its white sides
artificially bright. There were dozens of people at consoles, all of them
looking down, none of them focusing on the ship at all.
“Sitlas,”
said a young man sitting behind one of the main consoles.
Sitlas
went over to him. The young man looked at Lela as if she were a curiosity, then
looked away. “We’ve gotten a response.”
“We’ve
never had a response before,” Sitlas said. He pressed a spot on the corner of
the console. An image filled with static and distortions replaced the ship on
the screen. Lela could barely make out an alien covered in what appeared to be
white fur, with long tufts rising out
of its head. It did have eyes, though perfectly round and green, above what
appeared to be a muzzle.
It
spoke a language she didn’t understand, but something—clearly from the alien
ship, and not from inside the space center—attempted a translation.
“Come
in need. Have [undecipherable].
Will trade.”
Come
in need. Lela frowned.
“Play
them our message again,” Sitlas said to the young man.
“Wait,”
Lela said. “Shouldn’t we try to clarify their message?”
“They’re
talking about trade,” Sitlas said. He waved a hand. The young man pressed an
area on his console.
“It
didn’t sound that way to me,” Lela said. “Maybe we should try to translate this
ourselves.”
“My
orders are specific,” he said. “We’re to turn away all ships except those from
Vulcan.”
“But he
said they came in need.”
“His
bad translation said that.”
Lela
stared at Sitlas. After a moment, he looked away from her. “All right,” he
said. “We’ll see if we can find out what he really said.”
She
smiled. “Good.”
“The
second message has been sent,” the young man said. “They aren’t leaving orbit.”
Lela
sighed. “Maybe they’re in trouble.”
“Or
maybe they’re just trying to see how serious we are about wanting to be left
alone,” Sitlas said.
Lela
stared at the ship up on the screen. “How serious are we?”
Sitlas
said nothing, but she already knew the answer. The procedure was to send the message and then to ignore the
encroaching ship. If the ship attacked, Trill’s defense grid protected the
planet. So far, that had never been necessary. All the other ships passing
within close range of Trill heard the message and continued on.
“I
think anyone who is just interested in trade would be leaving right now,” Lela
said.
“Perhaps,”
Sitlas said. “But they’re aliens. Who knows what they’ll do?”
The
ship was still orbiting the following morning. Lela called a meeting of the
council, the first time she had ever tried anything like that. Junior members
were not supposed to call meetings, but she felt that delaying any longer would
be a serious mistake. She had learned, in lower level jobs, that the longer the
people in charge waited to make a decision, the greater the chance of making a
mistake.
She was
the first to arrive at the council chambers. The building was one of the oldest
in the city. A long narrow two-story section housed offices and a majestic
corridor that led to the council chambers proper. The chambers were in a huge,
oval shaped room—supposedly the largest room on Trill—with an opaque dome that
rose several stories above the floor. The effect was one of light and power, of
age and beauty. Whenever Lela entered through the ceremonial double doors, she
felt as if she had stepped back in time.
In some
ways, she had. One of the council’s many debates was on appropriating funds to
build a new chamber, one more equipped to handle modern life. Lela knew that sometime in her lifetime—or
more accurately, the Dax symbiont’s lifetime—a new chamber would be built.
She
would fight to keep the old one.
Lela
loved this room. It was here, when she had visited as a schoolchild, that she
decided she would make her future in politics. Fortunately the standardized
tests showed that her abilities bore this dream out. She was well suited to a
career here, a career she had known she would love.
That
love had not changed, despite the difficulties of being a council member. As
she sat in the back, where the youngest members were required to stay, she
dreamed of moving down to the more important seats. The leader’s podium stood
at the very center of the room, rising out of the floor on antigravs and
turning slowly whenever the leader spoke. The podium was made of acelon, a rare
pearlescent material found deep within the ice caves. Before each member’s seat
was an oval-shaped acelon desk that mirrored the opaque dome, making it look as
if the council members sat behind pieces of the sky.
“Lela
Dax.”
She
turned. Darzen Odan stood in the doorway. He was an officious man who wore his
hair long, hiding most of his spots as if he were somehow ashamed of them. He
was as short as she was, and his dark eyes sparked with intelligence, an
intelligence he often used to verbally assault anyone who opposed him.
“Perhaps
you did not pay attention to your first year council training,” he said. “It is
your elders who call the meetings,
those who have been in the council for more than one lifetime.”
She
straightened. Next to Odan, who had had at least seven hosts that she knew of,
she felt like a child. She had felt that way around the joined when she had
been unjoined, and now she felt that way with anyone whose symbiont had had
other hosts.
Odan’s
dark eyes glistened, as if he knew how she felt and was exploiting it.
“And
yet you’re here,” she said.
“Only
to remind you that you do not have the authority to call this meeting.”
She
shook her head slightly, biting the inside of her cheek to control her temper.
“Then I’ll go back to the space center and deal with the crisis myself.”
“Crisis?”
That had gotten his attention.
“There’s
a ship orbiting Trill,” she said. “It arrived last night. Surely you’ve heard
by now.”
Clearly
he hadn’t. And if Odan hadn’t heard, none of the other members had heard
either. She found this strange. They had so many sources within the political
structure that they sometimes forgot there was a universe outside of it.
Perhaps that was why Lela had the run of the space center; none of the other
council members thought it mattered in the grand political scheme of things.
“If
indeed there’s a ship orbiting,” he said, making it sound as if she were lying
to him, “then it should be told to leave us in peace.”
“It has
been,” she said. “The center sent its usual message, and the ship responded
with one of its own. The center
sent a message again, and the ship still has not left.”
“A
message of its own?”
Lela
felt her cheeks flush. He was toying with her. If this became important
information, he’d have it, and he’d take credit for it.
“Yes,”
she said. “That’s what I wish to discuss in front of the entire council.”
“Then
I’ll call them to order,” he said. “None of them were going to come, not
realizing, of course, that this is actually an important matter.”
She bit
back her response. Showing him how easy it was to upset her wouldn’t help her
in the council at all, “You might want to tell them to hurry,” she said. “This
isn’t something that’s going to wait for the council’s usual slowness.”
He
raised both eyebrows at her, as if surprised by her bluntness. Then he bowed
slightly and went through the door into the corridor, leaving her alone in the
chamber.
She let
out a small breath. She hadn’t been this angry in a long time. But Odan always
found a way to get to her. He’d hated her campaign—“The disenfranchised
unjoined?” he’d said. “As if what they want really matters. Long lasting
change, as you shall see, Lela, is what counts. Continuity over several
lifetimes”—and like so many others, he disliked the fact that a fourth woman
had made it onto the council.
Trill
tradition demanded that men rule the council—joined men—as they had done for
generations. Men’s roles and women’s roles were dramatically different when the
first council was formed. It was believed then that a symbiont would go from
male host to female host and experience vast differences between the
genders—that this was necessary to become a well-rounded Trill. But the joined
Trills soon realized that while the genders had their biological differences,
and those differences did make for a change in perspective, those perspectives
merged over the course of time—and many hosts. By the time a Trill had the
memories of several lifetimes, half as a man and half as a woman, understanding
the other gender’s perspective became relatively easy.
Despite
the fact that Odan had been both male and female in his past lives, he honored
tradition above all. He belonged to a more conservative party, one that
believed rapid change—defined as any change that took place within two
generations—was dangerous to Trill, and threatened the very life that he had
sworn, as a councilman to protect.
Odan
returned within a few moments, and walked past her down the stairs, taking his
seat in the center of the chamber. For all his lives, he was himself a
relatively new member to the council. Politics was something that had suited
him only one other time in the past.
Lela
remained by the door. She knew that Odan hadn’t told the others that he agreed
with her. She suspected that his announcement of the meeting had left her out
entirely. So she greeted everyone who came in, whether she got along with them
or not, thanking them for coming on such short notice. Part of her felt
ridiculous, as if she were giving a party and had only invited people she
disliked. Some of them nodded, most avoided her, and the rest greeted her with
nervous smiles.
Odan
ignored the whole thing, waiting at his desk for the meeting to start.
Finally
all of the seats were filled but hers. Dax crossed the back row, and sat down
behind her desk just as Lytus, head of the council, crossed the lower floor. He
was a tall, lanky man with the thinness of a scholar. In two quick steps, he
took his place behind the speaker’s podium.
As soon
as he touched it, the podium rose. It went high enough to be directly across
from the center seats. Lela frowned. Lytus was stopping directly across from
Odan. Lytus should have gone all the way to the top and stopped in front of
Lela.
“I give
the floor to Councillor Odan to explain the urgency of this meeting,” Lytus
said.
Lela
stood as Odan did, but she spoke quicker, projecting so that her voice echoed
throughout the chamber. “Forgive me, Mr. Speaker,” she said, “but you should
give the floor to me. I’m the one who called the meeting, although I did so
improperly. Councillor Odan was kind enough to help me when it became clear
that I had made a mistake in protocol.”
Everyone
in the chamber was looking at her, some with horror, some with barely repressed
amusement. Her move was a risky one. If Odan contradicted her, he would show
the other council members that she was unimportant. He would make this issue
his own, and possibly corrupt it. He would also take away what little power she
had.
It
would be the first volley in a protracted political war, one fought with polite
corrections and subtle interruptions and quiet outright lies. Lela knew she
could win this battle—she hadn’t told Odan everything and they both knew it—but
she didn’t have enough resources or experience to win the war.
Of
course, if Odan did play along, it would look as if they had formed an
alliance, something that would disturb his followers.
Odan
stared at her a moment too long. She found that she was holding her breath. His
eyes narrowed, and she thought he would renounce her. Then he bowed gracefully,
and she let out the air she had been holding.
“I
yield my time,” he said in his most penetrating voice, “to our newest newly
joined legislator, Lela Dax.”
His barbed
politeness made her flush. She had underestimated him yet again. While yielding
the floor, he had reminded everyone not only of her youth and inexperience—in
life as well as politics—but of the fact that he did not necessarily approve of
her.
She made
herself nod at him, though, and smile as if they were old friends. “I thank my
colleague Darzen Odan for his unselfish assistance in this matter,” she said,
relegating him to the inferior position. “I had the good fortune to be at the
space center last night when this crisis began. ...”
Within
the next few minutes, she explained the orbiting ship, and its strange response
to Trill’s leave-us-in-peace message. She concluded with:
“Esteemed
members of the council, I am worried. The aliens’ response to our initial
message was translated by their
own programs to be this—‘come in need. Have’—and here what they said was
something we haven’t been able to translate. Then they ended the message with ‘will
trade.’ We are working on our own translation of their words, but have come
up with nothing better yet. And we haven’t figured out what the missing phrase
is. I checked before the meeting.”
The
other councillors stared at her as if they couldn’t believe what she was
saying. Not because an orbiting ship made them incredulous, but because she had
brought this before them in the first place. Odan, who was still
standing—apparently he hadn’t yielded all of his time—had a slight smirk on his
face.
Lela
gestured toward them all with her right hand. “I am concerned, as you should
be, about the first part of their message. Come in need. We must find
out if they’re orbiting us because they’re in trouble and they cannot go on.”
“If
that is the case,” Lytus said, “then what does this will trade mean?”
“Perhaps
it means they want some natural resource that they believe we’ll give them, for
the right price,” Odan said. His comment was sly: Without saying anything he
revived all the arguments against the alliance with the Vulcans. Lela saw the
more conservative members of the council—the ones she knew disapproved of the
Vulcans—nodding.
“We
don’t know what any of it means,” Lela said. “We won’t know that until we
contact them again. I worry that, because of our silence, a ship full of beings
might be in trouble. They could be ill or dying in our orbit. We shouldn’t let
our concerns for Trill outweigh our natural compassion.”
“And
what if we discover that they are simple businesspeople?” one of the
councillors asked.
“Or
worse,” said another, “thieves.”
“They
wouldn’t be thieves,” Lela said, “not and contact us this way. And we’d
discover if they have other motives while they’re still in orbit. We will keep
the defense grid on.”
Lytus
hadn’t raised the podium to Lela’s level, apparently in silent communion with
Odan. “If I understand you correctly,” Lytus said, “You would like us to send a
new message to these aliens, asking them what they’re about.”
“Yes,”
Lela said.
“You
realize that violates the resolutions passed two decades ago, forbidding
contact with any new species.”
“Except
the Vulcans,” Odan said in his kindest voice. Another jab, reminding her that
she hadn’t been a legislator then—that she had been little more than a child.
“Yes, I
realize that,” Lela said. “But a resolution is not a law, and it can be changed
with a simple majority vote. That’s why I brought this to the council. I think
we have an obligation to make certain that these aliens are all right—”
“An
obligation?” Lytus asked. “To whom?”
“To
ourselves,” Lela said. “We cannot isolate ourselves forever.”
“Why
not?” another councillor asked.
They
all seemed to be staring at her, as if none of them could understand her
concern.
“There
are two reasons,” she said. “The first is that we should help other beings in
need.”
“A fine
sentiment,” Lytus said, “but one that becomes infinitely more complicated when
we start to consider lending our assistance to beings who are not from Trill.”
She
could get lost arguing that point forever. She would come back to it, but not
yet. She wasn’t going to let them derail her. “And, secondarily,” she pressed
on, “some day we’ll have to come out of our box. Events won’t let us remain
isolated.”
There
was a murmur throughout the chamber. Her words were heresy.
“What
sort of events?” someone asked.
“I
don’t know,” she admitted. “But it became clear when the Vulcans arrived that
we are part of an interstellar community. I think it’s better that we know
about our neighbors, know who these other species are and what they’re about,
rather than hiding behind our defense grid.”
The
murmuring eased. She had their attention now.
“We are
taught from childhood that knowledge is the pinnacle of Trill society. That is
one of the things the symbionts give us—a living knowledge of our own history,
a respect and reverence for our past.”
She
nodded toward Odan as she said that. He was still standing, but he was silent,
listening as if he hadn’t expected her to be so eloquent.
“Yet,”
she continued, “we’re closing ourselves off from knowledge that might become
crucial some day. We need to know what lies beyond Trill, what possibilities
exist in the stars.”
Her
words echoed for a moment. Her heart was pounding. No one spoke—no one
moved—for what seemed like an eternity. Then Lytus said, “We have the
capability of going to the stars. It was this capability that brought the
Vulcans to us, and showed us we needed to protect ourselves from outsiders.
Even the Vulcans offer no assurances that we live in a peaceful universe.”
Lela
felt the tension in her shoulders build.
“If we
choose to find out about other species,” Lytus said, “we can send our own ships
out to explore. Or we can consult with the Vulcans. We do not need visitors on
Trill.”
There
were murmurs again, but this time they were murmurs of agreement.
“I’m
not asking them to tour the planet,” Lela said with uncontrolled heat, and then
caught herself. Sarcasm wasn’t going to win this. “I just want to find out if
they’re injured or ill and in need of our help.”
The
councillors who were nodding had stopped. A few were frowning, but not in
displeasure. In concentration. Her argument had some weight.
“And if
they are?” Odan asked. She looked at him. He had a benign expression on his
face. “What then?”
Was he
trying to trip her up? She couldn’t tell. He didn’t really do things
maliciously. He acted out of what he believed. Unfortunately, he believed in
different things than she did.
“We see
if we can help them,” she said. It seemed so logical. Why were the councillors
having trouble with that?
“And
what if the only way to help them is to give the liquid from the symbiont pools?”
Again, his voice held no animosity. Only the guidance a teacher might give a
student.
Lela
paused. There was the right answer, and then there was the political answer.
She tried to blend them. “If they needed the liquid, then we’d have to find out
how much they need and how badly they need it, wouldn’t we? If it’s only a drop
to a dying people, I don’t know how we could begrudge that.”
Her
response was met with silence.
Finally,
Lytus said, “If there is no more comment, we shall take the matter of contacting
the alien ship to a vote.”
Lela
sat down, and as she did, she knew that she had lost.
She
couldn’t help herself. After the vote, she went to the space center. It was
better than sitting around her apartment, browbeating herself. She had known
the political answer to Odan’s question. If the aliens had wanted liquid from
the symbiont pools, no matter what the crisis, she should have said no, the
aliens couldn’t have it. The question was only hypothetical after all. And if
the hypothetical proved to be what the aliens wanted, she should have fought
with the council then.
Somehow
she had expected more compassion from her fellow councillors.
The
center was quieter today. The alien ship had, in the space of a few hours,
become less of a curiosity, more of a nuisance. The scientists who had gathered
the night before to see a glimpse of the ship’s glittery whiteness were nowhere
to be seen. The only difference between the observatory today and any other day
was that there were more specialists sitting at various stations.
The
ship remained on the screens. Lela stared at it for a long time, wondering what
was happening inside it, wondering if the aliens had even understood Trill’s
message or if they had to ignore it for reasons of their own.
She
sighed and went inside the control room. Sitlas was there, looking tired and
haggard. It was obvious that he hadn’t been to bed. He hadn’t changed clothing
since the night before, and his spots stood out against his exceedingly pale
skin.
When he
saw her, he gave her a preoccupied smile.
“Any
luck with the translation yet?” she asked.
He
shook his head.
She had
somehow expected that. “I need to send a coded message to Vulcan.”
He
nodded. The weariness slumped his shoulders. “Record your message. We’ll send
it encoded.”
At
least he hadn’t questioned her about the council vote. Not that he had any real
right to. She could always pull rank on him and make him do what she needed.
She just hated using authority that way, even though it was sometimes
necessary.
She sat
at the console he provided, downloaded a still image of the ship, and asked if
the Vulcans were familiar with these aliens, and if so, what they knew. She
also explained the situation, saying that Trill was not yet used to visitors
from space.
From
what she understood of the Vulcans, they would get the subtext of the message.
They had known about Trill’s isolationism. They had experienced it for years.
Then
she called Sitlas over, and he sent the message, encoded and on a protected
channel. She slumped in her chair. That was all she could do.
“Sitlas,”
one of the assistants said. “We’re receiving a message from the alien ship.”
“On
screen,” Sitlas said.
The
message was as scrambled as the one before. The static made the images blur,
but the words were nearly the same. “Please, need [undecipherable]. Urgent.
Will trade.”
And
then the screen went dark.
Lela
turned to Sitlas. “How often has that message come in?”
“Every
two hours,” he said. She heard weariness and exasperation in his voice.
“Has
there been any change?” Lela asked.
“Small
things,” Sitlas said. “It seems like a different alien has been speaking today.
And the phrasing is somewhat different.”
“Do you
think they’re in trouble?”
He
shrugged. “I don’t know. But we keep sending the go-away message. You’d think,
if they weren’t in some kind of trouble, they’d leave. I mean, that’s logical.”
“For
us,” she said.
He
nodded, “And they’re clearly not us.” He looked at the ship, still glittering
on the screen. “Maybe they’ll go away soon.”
“Maybe,”
Lela said. But she wasn’t so sure. Maybe they couldn’t leave. Maybe they’d stay
until they got what they needed or until they died.
Finally
she couldn’t take it anymore. Common decency meant finding out as much as
possible. The council’s resolutions against contact were just that:
resolutions. Not laws. She wouldn’t be committing an illegal act if she
contacted the aliens. She’d just be violating the consensus of the council.
“Open a
channel to them,” she said.
“Lela,
you know—”
“Open a
channel to them.”
He
stared at her. “The council said we can’t do this.”
“The
council suggested that we not do it,” she said. “Now open a channel.”
“If I
do, I could lose my job.”
“Not if
you blame it on me,” she said. He didn’t move. She crossed her arms. “Either
you gamble on my word that I’ll take the blame for this, or you lose your job
now. You know I could fire you and direct these people myself.”
His
mouth thinned, and she wondered if she’d be as welcome in the space center in
the future. Ah, well. The future was not something she’d worry about at the
moment.
“Do
it,” he said to one of his assistants. The woman ducked her head, but pressed a
finger against the console before her.
Lela
leaned forward. “My name is Lela Dax. I am a citizen of Trill, but I contact
you as a fellow being. I am not representing Trill in this matter. My planet wishes no contact with you. However, I have
heard your messages and would like to know if you’re all right.”
For a
moment, there was silence. And then static, as if the aliens were trying to
respond, but couldn’t.
“I am
concerned that you are in failing health or in need of repairs. Are you in
trouble?”
The
ship winked off screen. The same alien appeared as before. “Need [undecipherable].
Time is running out. Will trade.”
“Time
is running out on what?” Lela asked.
“[undecipherable].
Will buy. Whatever trade possible. Need [undecipherable] now.”
The two
undecipherable words or phrases were very different. Obviously their languages
weren’t that compatible.
“Are
you in physical danger?” she asked. “Is your crew healthy?”
“Need
[undecipherable]. Time
nearly gone. Need now.”
And
then the alien disappeared from the screen.
“Has
the transmission been cut?” she asked Sitlas.
He
shook his head.
She
leaned forward, one last time. “I will talk with my people’s leaders. I will
get back to you as soon as I can.”
But
there was no response to that.
“Now
the transmission’s been cut,” Sitlas said.
Lela
nodded. These last few messages supported her theory that something serious was
happening to these aliens. If she hurried, she might be able to help. But
first, she needed to speak to another member of the council. Lytus had made his
own position clear. She would
get no help from him. But Odan prided himself on his open mind. Odan, at least,
had listened to her earlier, even though he had embarrassed her before the
council.
He also
lived close to the space center.
“Keep
working on the translation,” Lela said to Sitlas. “I’ll be back shortly.”
He
nodded.
She
left the observatory and hurried through the technical buildings, where many of
the scientists worked. Just beyond that were the industrial neighborhoods. This
part of the city was the only place on Trill where acelon was refined. The
process was more of a polishing than a recovery. Apparently acelon arrived in
its raw state from the areas just outside the ice caves. It was stored in the
large buildings behind the plants, and then its black outsides were polished
away until the luminous material shone through. The process was expensive,
which was one of the reasons the mineral was so rare. But the procedure didn’t
pollute or harm the environment, so it could be carried out safely inside the
city rather than requiring a protected area.
Just
beyond the industrial area were some of the city’s best residential
neighborhoods. On a slight hill, the houses were positioned so that the purple
water of the ocean was just barely visible from the upper floors.
Odan
was in his garden, as she had expected him to be. Gardening was a passion for
him. He was bent over a row of multicolored flowers when she stopped outside
his gate.
“Odan,”
she said. “Forgive me for bothering you at home, but I must speak to you.”
He put
one hand on his back, stood, and looked at her as if she were smaller than a
bug. His wife came out onto the porch, a little girl clinging to her hand, but
he waved her away.
Other
neighbors, who had also been working in their yards, stopped. Apparently people
didn’t talk to each other on the streets in this neighborhood.
“I
guess you’d better come inside the gate,” he said pulling the door open. Lela
stepped inside, careful to avoid the smaller blooms that twisted around the
edges.
“I hope
this is important,” he said.
“And I
hope you’ll listen before you judge,” she said, and bit the inside of her
cheeks. The last thing she wanted to do was antagonize him, and that was the
first thing she had done.
His
dark eyes flashed. “I’ll make the attempt,” he said with undisguised sarcasm.
“Thank
you.” She took a deep breath and told him about her trip to the space center.
She also told him about her decision to contact the aliens.
“You
knew about the resolution,” he said angrily. “This is not something you should
have done on your own.”
“I
think they’re in trouble,” she said. “Their last message was ‘Time is running
out.’ I ordered Sitlas to continue trying to translate what they want. I think
if we know that, we might be able to act. They aren’t going to leave, Odan.”
He made
a sound of disgust and turned his head away from her. Then he said, “You know
this could get you censured, maybe even removed.”
She was
shaking. She hadn’t realized it until now. “Yes, I know,” she said. “But I
couldn’t face the thought of a dead ship orbiting Trill, not if its occupants
could have survived if only we’d helped.”
“We
have no idea what’s happening up there,” Odan said. “Your scenario could be
wrong.”
“It
could be,” she said.
“And
you’d risk your career for that?”
Her
smile was small. “It seems I already have.”
He
nodded. He wouldn’t meet her gaze. Perhaps she shouldn’t have trusted him after
all. She had just given him the tools with which to destroy her in the
council—and on Trill—forever.
Suddenly
there was a large explosion, and the ground rocked. Another explosion and
another shattered the air around her. Her ears ached. She grabbed Odan and
threw him to the ground, then looked up to see what was causing the problem.
Bright
beams of red light were cutting through the sky, slamming into the ground
below. Anything the light touched shattered. Dust clouds were rising, and
several of the nearby houses were gone.
People
were running, covered in dirt and dust. Lela thought they were screaming, but
she couldn’t be certain. Her ears were ringing: She couldn’t hear anything
else.
Odan
struggled beneath her as another explosion rocked them. He stretched out his
hand toward his house, and Lela’s heart stopped. His family was inside. He
wanted to get to them.
But for
the moment, at least, the house was all right. He was in more danger on the
street.
The
explosions continued, and then she saw a blinding white light that covered the
entire sky. The light focused down, disappearing on the streets around the
industrial complex—or perhaps the space center. She couldn’t tell.
Had she
brought this wrath on them from the aliens? Was this their response to her
message?
Had her
impulsiveness hurt her people?
The
ground continued to shake, only this shaking was continual, not like the
explosions of moments ago. The white light grew dark, and then vanished
altogether, leaving her seeing spots in front of her eyes.
Bits of
rock rained down around them, and dust continued to fall like a light mist.
People were still running, many of them bleeding, some heading toward the areas
where the houses had been. Small fires burned and the air was filling with
smoke.
Lela
stood. So did Odan. Without a word, he ran into his house. Through the door,
she saw him embrace his wife and daughter.
Lela’s
head ached, and her ears still rang. Something wet trickled down her jawline.
She put a nervous finger to it, and looked at it, seeing blood.
The
aliens had attacked, although she did not know why. How had they broken through
the defense grid? What had they done?
What
had she done?
She
took a deep breath, put a hand over her belly, and noted that the symbiont felt
fine. Then she walked toward the destruction, and began searching for survivors
in the rubble.
It was
night by the time Lela finally accepted medical help. Her hearing returned,
slowly, the damage to her ears minimal despite the blood. The doctors said she
would hear ringing for some time, maybe permanently, but she would be able to
hear.
She
supposed she should be grateful for that.
The
doctors made her stay in the hospital overnight along with the others who were
injured in the attacks. Because of her position on the council, her injuries
were high profile: The doctors wanted to make certain she was fine before she
left.
While
she was there, she heard the statistics. Fifty-five dead, one hundred
injured—many severely. Most of the damage occurred in Odan’s neighborhood and
in the industrial areas. Eighty homes were destroyed, and several businesses
were wiped out. The acelon processing plant was in the center of the
destruction and untouched, but all of the raw acelon was gone.
The
ship had left Trill’s orbit immediately after the attack. No Trill ships could
be launched quickly enough to reach it, and no one was sure what they would
have done if they had caught it. The alien ship’s weapons were obviously far
superior to Trill’s. It had blasted through the defense grid as if it hadn’t
even been there.
Lela harbored
a secret fear that it had been her message that had triggered the attack. After
all, they were having language problems. Perhaps she had said something, led
them to believe something, that made them feel as if they had to act now.
But she
spoke of that fear to no one, at least not yet. She would wait to see what the
translations brought. She didn’t expect a vindication.
She no
longer knew what to expect at all.
The
next morning, when she left the hospital, she did not go home. Instead, she
went directly to the space center. The screens showed stars as they had before.
The lovely gauzelike ship, the bringer of such destruction, was really and
truly gone.
Lela
wasn’t the only council member at the space center. Odan was there as well.
“How’s
your family?” she asked him.
“Shaken,”
he said. Then he frowned a little, as if he had realized he was being gruff.
“But fine.”
Lela
nodded. There wasn’t much she could say to him. There wasn’t much she could say
to anyone.
She
found Sitlas. He was pouring over data on one of the consoles.
“Any
translations yet?” she asked.
He
shook his head. “We don’t have common words, apparently, for some of these
things.” He pushed his chair back. “I do have a transmission from Vulcan,
however, coded specifically for you. Would you like to take it privately?”
She
sighed. Too little, too late. “If you don’t mind.”
He led
her to his office, a large room off the observatory. The inside was decorated
with plants and pictures of purple waves, crashing on famous beaches.
He
directed her to his chair, punched the console, and then left her. The Vulcan
IDIC symbol—a silver circle with a gold triangle overlapping its lower
edge—blinked on the screen. She tapped it.
A young
woman appeared. Her long face looked majestic to Lela, and she wore her dark
hair piled high above her head. The hairstyle displayed, rather than hid, her
pointed ears.
“The
beings who orbit your planet are known to us as the L’Dira. They depend upon a
substance you call acelon for much of their technology. They have exhausted the
supplies of acelon on their homework! and in the surrounding solar system.”
The
woman’s speech was curiously accented, as if she were actually speaking Trill
instead of letting a translation program make her words clear.
“The
L’Dira will trade for any acelon they receive, but they are an impatient
people. If they believe negotiations have taken too long, they will take what
they need. Their weapons technology is quite advanced. We calculate an
eighty-three-point-nine percent probability that they will overpower your
defenses. The L’Dira are quite tenacious. They will not leave until they have
what they came for. We suggest that, in order to avoid bloodshed, you negotiate
with them, and come to a satisfactory arrangement before they decide to take matters
into their own hands.”
The
woman then vanished from the viewscreen, to be replaced by the symbol.
Lela
bit her lower lip. The message both relieved her and angered her. She hadn’t
caused the attack. The destruction would have happened anyway. But she had been
wrong. She had thought the aliens in need, hurting. She had let her imagination
rule her heart. There was no place for fancy in government. Perhaps if she had
been looking more clearly, she would have focused on the word “trade” instead
of the word “need.”
The
door opened. Sitlas stood there, Odan beside him. Lela stiffened.
“I
heard there was a message from Vulcan,” Odan said.
“It’s
for me,” Lela said.
“I
assume it’s in response to your query. If that’s the case, then it’s for all of
us.” His voice was curiously gentle.
Lela
got up and stood aside. Odan came into the room, but Sitlas remained outside,
and closed the door.
Odan
sat in the chair, and touched the screen, just as Lela had. The message played.
The woman’s voice had as much—or perhaps more—force on the repetition.
Lela
did not watch Odan as the message played. She listened again, tried to see if
there was any blame in it, but there appeared to be none. Only the logical and
careful words of an ally. An ally who had been contacted too late.
When
the message ended, Lela turned. Odan was rubbing his eyes with one hand. When
he realized she was watching him, he made a weak attempt at a smile and stood.
“I
thank you for sharing the message with me,” he said. “I would like to play it
for the council.”
She
nodded. Of course her role in all of this would have to be made clear. Odan
would see to it.
Losing
her position on the council would hurt terribly—especially now. But she would
take the punishment, if she had to, even though that meant she would leave the
council in the hands of those who tried to keep outsiders away from Trill. Over
fifty people had died because Trill didn’t know the proper way to deal with the
L’Dira. And if Lela had to sacrifice her career to prove that point, she would
do it.
She
wouldn’t let anyone die on her watch again.
Odan
presented everything to the council. Lela’s actions, the response from Vulcan.
Everything. He did so in a quiet voice, his head bowed, as if he couldn’t look
at his fellow councillors.
Lela
sat in her chair in the back, unable to touch the acelon desk before her. All
the processed acelon remained. Only the raw, newly harvested acelon had been
taken. She could no longer look at the substance without thinking of the ground
rumbling beneath her feet, the mist of dust, the bleeding people staggering
through the remains of their neighborhood.
There
wasn’t much to say after Odan’s presentation. No one even tried. Fifty deaths,
the words of the Vulcan woman, the place that ignorance had brought them all
was obvious even to the most isolationist council members.
The
votes were swift and clear. Trill would no longer tell its alien visitors to
avoid the planet. Each alien ship would be handled on a case-by-case basis. Protection for the Caves of Mak’ala would increase.
Trill would do all it could to learn about its neighbors from the stars.
The
first step, suggested by Odan, was to ask Vulcan to send a representative
immediately, armed with information about all the species that Vulcan was
familiar with. The representative would make a short verbal presentation to the
council, as well as give Trill Vulcan’s entire database on other life-forms.
Lela
had a hunch Vulcan would welcome this request.
Then
Odan relinquished the floor, and Lytus’s podium rose. Lela watched in confusion
as it rose to the highest level, the level of the beginners. Her level.
“We
have one final matter,” Lytus said, “and I believe it is as important as all
the other matters we touched upon today.”
He was
looking at her. Lela’s stomach tightened. She didn’t know if he was going to
praise her for her attempt at contacting the L’Dira or if he was going to
chastise her in front of the council.
She
wasn’t sure she wanted to experience either one. She had been wrong about the
L’Dira. She had taken the wrong actions for the right reasons, and in that, she
felt as if she had failed.
“Lela
Dax,” Lytus said and Lela started, “has violated her oath as a council member.
She has failed to follow protocol, failed to acknowledge our resolutions. When
she contacted the L’Dira she took the business of governing Trill into her own
hands. This is treason—”
“No!”
Lela whispered, her voice cracking.
“—and
shall be treated as such before the council. Lela Dax, you must stand.”
She was
shaking. She hadn’t committed treason. She hadn’t done anything criminal. She
had only disregarded a resolution. She hadn’t represented herself as the leader
of Trill—in fact, she had been careful to avoid that.
But she
said none of those things.
“You
have been charged with treason. In closed session, the council will decide your
future. Until then, you will not be allowed inside chambers, and all of your
privileges as a council member are hereby revoked.”
She had
studied such things in Trill’s history, but she thought treason charges happened
only in the past, when Trill was a younger, less stable society. Her throat
ached, and her eyes burned. She’d never expected this to happen to her. She
didn’t even know how to act.
Lytus
was staring at her directly. “You must leave us now,” he said, and his words
weren’t gentle.
She
stood, nearly losing her balance, but she didn’t put out her hand to catch
herself. She wasn’t going to fall, not now, not in front of everyone. She
walked with slow deliberation, making the few steps to the door take forever.
Then
she stepped into the corridor, and the double doors slammed behind her, maybe
forever.
She put
a hand on the wall and leaned against it heavily. Fifty-five people had died.
The council needed a scapegoat and she was the obvious one. That, in some ways,
was the political way to look at this.
But
inside, she couldn’t help wondering if, in her concern for the aliens—her misplaced
concern, she hadn’t actually done the things Lytus had charged her with.
She was
shaking so badly she didn’t know what to do. There wasn’t anything she could
do. Until the council finished its deliberations—apparently without her—she
had no profession, no work. Nothing to do.
She
couldn’t even defend herself.
A hand
touched her shoulder. She blinked twice, trying to compose herself before
looking to see who was behind her. Probably someone they sent to kick her out
of the building.
She
took a deep breath, and turned.
Odan
stood there. As soon as she faced him, he let his hand fall.
She
braced herself. The last thing she wanted was another confrontation, but better
to get it over with now when everything was going wrong.
He
noted her new stance, and nodded slightly, as if in acknowledgment of their
adversarial relationship. “It is customary in matters like this,” he said,
sounding even more formal than usual, “for the defendant to have an advocate in
the council.”
She had
known that, but she hadn’t remembered it until he mentioned it. All of the
defendants in the treason trials—all five of them over the centuries—had had
advocates to argue their case.
She
opened her mouth to thank Odan for reminding her of this. He hadn’t owed her
anything, and yet he was willing to help her, at least this much.
But he
spoke first. “If it’s all right with you, I would like to be your advocate.”
For a
moment, she didn’t think she had heard him correctly. Then she frowned. Another
political trick? It couldn’t be. Odan, for all his machinations, was too
ethical for that.
“Thank
you,” Lela said. “But I don’t really understand why you would want to, given
our history.”
For the
first time, his gaze didn’t meet hers. “Because you were right.”
“No, I
wasn’t. I thought they were hurting—”
“You
said we should learn as much about our neighbors as we can. You were right. If
we had known about the L’Dira’s behaviors, we wouldn’t have made the mistakes
we did. We wouldn’t have lost all those lives.”
“That’s
what you’ll argue before the council?” she asked.
“That
and other things.” He raised his head. She had never seen his black eyes look
so sad. “You’ve taught me much, Lela Dax. You’ve taught me that just because
someone has lived several lifetimes doesn’t mean he has an open mind.”
The
closed session was continuous, breaking only for meals and sleep. The
councillors weren’t allowed to speak to anyone and were, in fact, housed away
from their families for the duration of the trial. Lela had thought the session
would last a day, maybe two, but it seemed to drag on forever.
Perhaps
more was at stake than her career. If Odan had made his argument about open
minds, the entire chamber probably had erupted into anger.
On the
morning of the third day, the Vulcan emissary arrived on Trill. The emissary
wasn’t allowed to speak to the council until the trial was done, and so was
housed in a government apartment across the road from Lela’s. Lela had hoped
for an audience, but had been turned away by Trill security. For the moment,
Lela was less than a citizen. She was no one at all.
Still,
Lela heard rumors that the emissary was interested in the trial and its
outcome, although she didn’t know why. Lela herself had never met any Vulcans,
and didn’t know why they would be interested in the internal affairs of Trill.
On the
other matters, however, Lela heard no rumors. She had no idea what the council
would decide about her fate. She wasn’t sure what she deserved.
Finally,
on the fourth afternoon, she couldn’t stand being confined in her rooms any
longer. Desperate for some kind of clarity, she went to the only place left:
the Caves of Mak’ala.
The
Guardians let her in, of course. She wasn’t sure they would. She wasn’t sure of
anything anymore.
The
caves felt like home. She went deep inside, to the pools. The grayish liquid
looked inviting. Part of her missed the water, missed the interconnecting
pools, and the warmth, and the sudden communication with the other symbionts.
The faintly damp odor made her tingle, and she watched as a symbiont surfaced.
Energy discharged across the water as the symbiont communicated with one of its
unseen fellows. She felt as if she could almost, almost understand what
was being said.
But
almost understanding and truly understanding were two very different things.
She
should have known that. She remembered what it was like to imagine being
joined, and then experiencing the reality. They were nothing alike.
If she
had remembered that, she might have known that she was making a mistake with
the alien ship.
Maybe.
Odan
was right. She was doubly young. And only beginning to learn.
She
stayed in the caves for a very long time, watching the symbionts rise and play
in the waters. What a carefree time that had been, and how she hadn’t known it.
The Dax part of her had wanted to see the rest of the world, the rest of the
universe, and now it could.
At
great cost.
Perhaps
she wasn’t worthy of her symbiont. Perhaps her ambitions were too small, her
imagination too wild. Perhaps the Symbiosis Evaluation Board had made a mistake
in choosing her.
But the
choice had been made. To remove the symbiont was to kill Lela, and no matter
what she had done, she wasn’t ready to die.
Finally,
she sighed and left the pools. Going back wasn’t the answer. Going forward, no
matter what, was the only solution.
She
turned away from the pools and took her first step.
When
she returned to her apartment, she was startled to find three guards in front
of the door. Two of them were Vulcan. The third was a man she recognized from
the diplomatic corps.
“What’s
this?” she asked.
“The
emissary from Vulcan made a request. I felt that we should honor it.”
Lela
frowned at him. “What request?”
“Please,
just go inside.”
She
did. As she closed the door, a young and statuesque Vulcan woman turned away
from the windows. She wore long robes and had her hands threaded together
inside their sleeves. Her entire body had a majesty that Lela had never seen
before.
Although
she had seen the woman’s face. It was the same woman who had responded to her
message.
“I am
T’Pau,” the woman said. “We should talk.”
It felt
odd to have her here—to have anyone here—among Lela’s meager possessions. Her
furniture was provided. The bits of artwork on the walls had been done by a
childhood friend. The sparseness of the apartment seemed to stand out painfully
in the Vulcan’s presence.
T’Pau
seemed to sense Lela’s discomfort. “You have great courage,” she said.
Lela
shook her head. “I am a great fool.”
“I have
seen nothing foolish about you.” T’Pau glanced at the wooden chair beside her.
Lela
blushed. “I’m sorry. Please, have a seat.”
“I know
it is not customary for your people to allow others inside their private
spaces,” T’Pau said as she sat. “I should have gone through proper channels.
But, it seemed, no one wanted us to speak. I thought this course the most
prudent.”
“It’s
fine,” Lela said, wondering if what she had heard was actually an apology or if
she had just imagined it. She sat in an upholstered chair she rarely used. It
made her feel as if she were the guest in her own home.
T’Pau
seemed focused on what she needed to say. “Your people are not used to first
contacts. To meet another species is a difficult thing.”
“I’m
beginning to realize that,” Lela said.
“We
learn it every time we encounter one.” T’Pau’s speech patterns were oddly
formal. She did not smile as she spoke.
Was
this what made an alien—the subtle differences, the fact that even though they
seemed the same, they were not? Or were the more obvious differences, like the
ears, the most important ones? Lela couldn’t tell.
“Our
most recent encounter,” T’Pau said, “was with a strange species. We did not
expect them to have warp capabilities, but they did. They had suffered a
devastating global war and were just recovering from it. A man in a remote area
of their countryside built a warp ship as a beacon of hope. We saw it, and
initiated contact.”
Lela
waited. Obviously T’Pau was trying to impart something important.
“They
are a highly passionate people—so passionate that even their music stirs the
emotions. My colleagues on the ship that made the first contact reported that
much of their music was physically painful to listen to.”
Lela
frowned. She wasn’t sure how this should matter to her.
“But
they are a highly creative people, an intuitive people, who seem to use their
intellect and their emotions in harmony to create new things. We believe that,
given time, their potential will increase exponentially. Despite their recent
troubles, and a long history of discord, we believe they are on the verge of
becoming a powerful force for civilization.”
“How do
you know that?” Lela asked.
“Knowledge.
Our experience observing other cultures has demonstrated that it is the species
who strive, who try new things, who ultimately thrive among the stars. Those
that hide their heads stagnate. They do not survive.”
She
understood that, and didn’t like it. “I stuck my head out, but I made such a
mistake. I believed the L’Dira harmless. I thought maybe they were in trouble.”
“They
were in trouble,” T’Pau said, “in their own way of thinking. They rely on
acelon. It is necessary for the way they live, and they will not learn any
other way, even though they have used up all the acelon in their own system. It
has driven them to become little more than pirates, even though they claim they
will trade.”
“I
should have suspected something,” Lela said.
T’Pau
shook her head. “It is illogical to expect yourself to act differently in
hindsight. However, you did not approach the L’Dira like L’Dira. You expected
them to act like Trill. You must always trust a species to act in ways rational
to its own culture. To do so requires you to understand that culture. It is not
a task done lightly or quickly.”
Lela nodded.
That made sense to her. But it seemed so logical, it made her wonder why she
hadn’t thought of it herself.
T’Pau
was watching her, dark eyes unfathomable.
Lela
folded her hands together. “Why would you want to talk with me? You know I’m in
disgrace.”
“I know
your people have much to learn when it comes to other species. That includes
understanding that your search for knowledge is Trill’s only salvation.”
Lela
turned. She didn’t know why she trusted this calm woman, but she did. Not with
state secrets, only with her own. “I contacted the L’Dira after I sent a
message to you. I asked them if they were in trouble. Did I do something that
might have provoked their attack?”
“No,”
T’Pau said. “It is as I said in my message. They are an impatient people, even
when negotiations are ongoing.”
Lela
felt her shoulders relax. She didn’t realize until that moment how much she
feared that the attack was her fault.
“You
have great courage,” T’Pau repeated, “and vision as well. You do not fear to
imagine what lies ahead. Do not allow others to extinguish that quality within
you. You must always do what you believe to be right.”
“Odan
says I’m too young to know what’s right.”
T’Pau
seemed to consider Lela for a moment. “In this universe we are all young, Lela
Dax,” she said at last. “That is the subtle truth that often eludes so many
promising life-forms. Youth contains the potential for growth. Once an
individual—or a culture—forgets that, the growth stops.
“Your
world needs people like you, Lela Dax. Never doubt that.”
Before
Lela could respond, T’Pau rose from her chair, apparently satisfied that she
had accomplished what she had set out to do. She held up her right hand, paired
fingers parted, thumb at rest.
“Live
long,” T’Pau said, “and prosper.”
It
seemed to have more meaning than a simple sentence. But Lela did not know how
to respond.
“Th-thank
you,” she said.
Then
T’Pau turned away, and let herself out of the apartment.
Lela
watched her go. What Lela’s people saw as a character flaw, T’Pau saw as a
survival trait. And maybe they were both right.
For the
first time since her indictment, Lela smiled.
A short
time later, a runner knocked at her door. “The council has made a decision,” he
said. “You’re to come with me.”
She
did.
Her
meeting with T’Pau had left her calmer, ready to face whatever came at her, no
matter what the cost.
The
runner led Lela through a side corridor that went down, not up. He was taking
her to the chamber floor. Her hands started to shake. She wouldn’t be allowed
to return to her desk.
They were
going to throw her out of the council. Her political career would be over.
The
runner opened a small door that led to a passageway under some of the desks.
Then he swept his arm forward, indicating that she should go through.
At the
door stood Lytus and Odan. She couldn’t tell from the expression on their faces what the verdict was.
“Stand
in the center of the floor, please,” Lytus said.
She
walked past him without a word, to the spot he had indicated. His podium was
slightly to her left. He did not stand behind it. Instead, he waited on the
periphery, like Odan. The other council members filled their seats. They looked
tired, and the room had a faint scent of sweat and rotting food. They had spent
a lot of hours here, debating her fate.
Her
fate and, in its own way, that of Trill. Condemning her for trying to act when
they would not would mean that, despite the resolutions they passed, they had
no intention of learning about any other species.
“Lela
Dax.” The voice belonged to the sergeant at arms. “You have been tried on the
charges of treason. The council has delivered its verdict. You shall stand and
hear.”
She
stood straighter, but she couldn’t turn to see the councillors behind her. The
ones in front could not meet her gaze.
“Lela
Dax,” The sergeant at arms continued. “You have been tried on charges of
treason, and found not guilty.”
She let
out a small breath.
“But
because you have violated resolutions made by this august body, you must bear
the consequences.”
A
shiver ran through her whole body. She wasn’t guilty of treason. Odan had
argued for her. And done well.
“Lela
Dax. The council has issued a formal reprimand that will remain upon your record throughout all of the Dax
symbiont’s lifetimes. Should you ever act against council resolutions again,
you shall face a harsher penalty. Do you understand your punishment?”
There
was a small silence before she realized she had to respond. “Yes.”
“Have
you anything to say in your own defense?”
She
stepped toward the podium. Odan’s eyes widened and he shook his head slightly.
Clearly, he didn’t want her to speak.
Lela
placed her hands on the podium, and felt it slowly rise, until it was in the
center of the room. Then the podium spun, slowly. “I have nothing to say in my
defense,” she said. “But I do need to speak.”
She
surveyed the council. The members were watching her, their attention rapt. She
thought she saw Odan stiffen, as if he was afraid she would undo all of his
good work.
“I have
learned much these last few days,” she said. “I have learned, painfully, my own
limitations. I have not yet realized how to look outside myself, and in failing
that, I have not learned how to look outside my own culture. For that, I ask
the council’s forgiveness.”
Several
members were nodding. Odan blinked, looking faintly surprised.
“Thank
you,” she said, “for being lenient with me. I will do all I can to regain your
trust.”
Then
she turned to Lytus. “And now you need to tell me how to get down.”
Laughter
rippled through the council chambers, and it sounded to Lela like relieved
laughter. Lytus touched a small button near the base, and the podium came down
on its own.
Lela
left it. Lytus touched her arm. “You may take your seat again.”
Lela
smiled, but did not thank him. Then she walked back toward the door. She was
still shaking, but she felt stronger than she had for a long time. Maybe
stronger than she ever had.
She
stopped in front of Odan. “I owe you my career,” she said. “I don’t know how to
thank you.”
He
studied her for a moment. “I didn’t do this for you,” he said. “I did this for
those who died. You weren’t the only one who didn’t know how to look outside
our culture. The council—and perhaps Trill itself—had the same flaw. Only you
tried. And if we had listened to you, lives would have been saved.”
“Perhaps,”
Lela said. “A wise woman recently told me that it’s not logical to expect
yourself to act differently in hindsight.”
“That’s
true,” Odan said. “But it’s important to examine your mistakes so that you
won’t make them again. I can’t change what we did or how we handled the L’Dira.
But I could change how we handled you.”
She
smiled slightly at the idea of having to be handled at all. “Still,” she said.
“I owe you thanks and more.”
“Then
do me one favor,” Odan said.
“Anything.”
“Don’t
let this incident cause you to lose your passion.”
“I
thought you disapproved of it.”
His
lips thinned, and it took her a moment to realize he was suppressing a
smile. “I think I may have envied it, maybe even feared it. But I’ve grown to
understand it. Your passion is your strength.”
“And my
weakness,” Lela said.
He
nodded slightly, then said, “In most things I probably won’t be your ally.”
“I
didn’t expect you to be.”
“We’re
too different.”
“I
know.”
“But
you’ve taught me that differences can be a strength, too.” He turned toward
Lytus, who had watched the entire exchange. “We should send for the emissary
from Vulcan now.”
Lytus
frowned. “This is happening too fast.”
Odan
glanced at Lela, and this time he did smile. “Some would say that this didn’t
happen fast enough.”
Lela
knew better than to get into the middle of that argument. Let the old-timers
worry about the swiftness of change. She was glad that it was happening at all,
that the doors were opening. She could scarcely wait to hear what T’Pau had to
say about the stars, about the other species, about the minds who dwelled on
distant worlds. Perhaps some day, in this lifetime or a different one, she
would have a chance to see these exotic places for herself, to breathe their
air, to speak with their people.
But for
now, learning about them would be enough. Learning about them, and helping her
world open its doors to the universe.
“Painfully shy, introverted, a
certain lack of confidence ... just the kind of person who would begin looking
for ways to dazzle people with his ‘magical’ abilities.”
—Julian Bashir
“Rejoined”
Jeffrey Lang is the author of Star Trek: The Next
Generation—Immortal Coil; the co-author (with David Weddle) of
Star Trek: Deep Space Nine—Section 31: Abyss; and the upcoming (with
J. G. Hertzler) DS9 arc, The Left Hand of Destiny. He is also
currently working on a long-form comic project called Sherwood. Lang
lives in Wynnewood, Pennsylvania, with his wife, Katie, his son, Andrew, and a
dog named Buster, who insists on being walked too darned often.
Jeffrey Lang
A
TINY, DARK craft fell through the void, tumbling and twisting
wherever the solar wind carried it. No running lights burned, no thruster
flared. It looked dead, but it was not. It was waiting, watching for ripples in
space the way an angler watches the surface of a pond.
Within,
two spoke softly, heads bent together. “Do you see?” one said, pointing at a
scanner. “Here. And, again, here—nearer the star cluster.”
“Yes.
It is as the scientists said it would be.” He tapped a key on his com panel and
said, “Prepare the device.” Without looking at his comrade, he said, “If we do
not succeed, it would be better to plot a course into the heart of the nearest
sun and hope that our families remember us with some honor.”
“That
would be faster,” the other replied without humor, “than some of the
alternatives.”
His
associate sighed, then said, “Faster. Yes, much faster.” He tapped the scanner.
“But not as fast as this. Look at it. Clumsy, badly armored, no doubt piloted
by a coward and captained by an idiot, but look. Faster than light.” He shook his head in wonder and disgust.
“They could control the quadrant if they wished, but instead they squabble and
argue among themselves, every voice raised, a cacophony of fools.” He looked
down at his hand and was surprised to see that he had clenched it into a fist.
He uncurled it, then touched the scanner again. “But we will see, won’t we?
Even the fleetest can be tripped if you know where to place the snare.”
Thrusters
sparked for the first time in many days, nudging the craft onto a new heading.
Something tumbled out of the ship’s hold—something dark and spherical, less than a meter in diameter. The
ship moved off, and waited.
The
snare was set.
Tobin
Dax extended the fan of pasteboard rectangles toward the only other person
sitting at the table and made the traditional petition: “Pick a card, any
card.”
His
dining companion, Skon of Vulcan, lowered his padd the two centimeters
necessary to look Tobin in the eye without actually having to move his head. He
was a picture of reserve, of calm acquiescence, but there was something in his
tone that betokened a hint of impatience, perhaps even exasperation. “Why?” he
asked.
Tobin,
who was attempting to maintain the “cheerfully winning” expression recommended
by 99 Great Card Tricks You Can Learn in Your Spare Time, was
momentarily taken aback. The grin slipped and his features drooped back into
what appeared to be—judging by the well-worn spray of worry lines around his
eyes and mouth—the expression that fit his face most comfortably: anxious
confusion. “Well,” he stammered, then faltered, Adam’s apple bobbing. Rhythm
broken, Tobin patted a pair of stray hairs back over his bald spot and knew he
was blushing. “Well, uh, because—because if you don’t then there won’t be a
trick.”
“A
‘trick?’ ” Skon asked. “You intend to ‘trick’ me?”
“No,”
Tobin said, feeling tiny drops of perspiration trickling down from under his
armpits. “Not trick you, but, uh, entertain you. I’m performing
a trick. It’s an illusion, a sleight-of-hand.” He was familiar with this
sensation, though had only recently learned that the Terrans had a name for it
(Terrans, amazingly, had a name for every uncomfortable, miserable, or
otherwise unwanted emotional state); they called it “flopsweat.” You’re
flopping, Tobin, said a tiny semi-rational voice inside his head. And
you’re having an anxiety attack in front of a Vulcan. This is considered to be
in bad taste.
Tobin
had been on board the Heisenberg, a ship owned by the Cochrane Institute
of Alpha Centauri, for just longer than three weeks. His shared meals with
Skon, who had boarded the ship a week after he had, were the closest thing he
had to a personal relationship since leaving Trill. Most of the twenty-odd
passengers and crew were, like Tobin and Skon, physicists or engineers who had
been enlisted by the Institute to work on a project that would, they believed,
revolutionize the exploration of the galaxy. Unlike Tobin and Skon, however,
all their shipmates were humans, mostly from Alpha Centauri, but a few from
Earth and Mars, as well. Tobin had uncharacteristic confidence where the
project was concerned, possibly because his own seminal work in the field was
what had caught the Cochrane Institute’s attention. But that didn’t change the
fact that living and working on a ship full of humans—generally considered the
loudest of the known sentient species—while bouncing around the quadrant to
pick up other members of the team on the way back to Alpha Centauri, was more
than his overtaxed nerves could take.
Tobin
liked the quiet, reserved Vulcan mathematician and greatly admired his work in
quantum phase variance. So, typically, Tobin’s way of demonstrating his respect
and admiration was to annoy him with card tricks. No doubt, Tobin decided, Skon
would subtly rearrange his schedule and take the rest of his meals in perfect,
blissful solitude.
Tobin
began to fold up the fan of cards (which had begun to grow sticky from his
sweaty fingers), but before he could finish, Skon set his padd on the table, reached
out, and took a card. “What should I do with it?”
“Uh,
put it on the table,” Tobin stammered, surprised. Skon did as he was told. The
card was an eight of clubs. “Now take another,” Tobin said. Skon took another
card and set it down on the table. It was an ace of clubs.
“Is
there some significance to the symbols?” Skon asked.
“I’m
not sure,” Tobin said. “When Captain Monsees gave me the deck and the book of
tricks, she didn’t give me any reference material about the history or
sociology of the cards themselves. She just said, ‘Here—something to keep your
hands busy. You fidget too much.’ ”
“
‘Fidget?’ ” Skon repeated.
Tobin
shrugged. “Terran languages are full of words like that. It means I’m too, oh,
ah ...” He groped for a word that wasn’t too unflattering. “Nervous,” he
settled on.
Skon
picked up his padd and softly spoke a few words in his native tongue. Tobin
knew that Skon was asking it to search the database for references and that he
would check them later when he had a free moment. He placed the padd back on
the table and asked, “Are we finished?”
“No,”
Tobin said. “Take another card.” Skon did. It was the eight of spades. He
placed it on the table next to the other two cards.
“I
assume, then,” Skon said, “that the next card will be the ace of spades.”
“If I
do it correctly,” Tobin said.
“Do what
correctly?” Skon asked.
“It’s
called a force. I’m making you choose particular cards.”
Skon
paused and pondered this for a moment. Then, he said, “When you tell me that
you are trying to make me do something, do you not run the risk that I might
attempt to resist whatever you want me to do?”
Tobin
considered this, feeling his spots flush with embarrassment. “Well, yes. So I
have to account for that in my tactics—knowing that you know that. That’s the
trick then, isn’t it?”
Skon,
who had been reaching for another card, pulled his hand back, and stopped to
study Tobin’s determinedly blank—but “cheerfully winning”—expression. Then, he
reached toward the fan, selected his fourth card, and set it on the table beside
the other three.
Jack of
hearts.
“Well,”
Tobin said, sounding disappointed, but not terribly surprised. “More practice.”
“Indeed,”
Skon said, retrieving his padd. “Perhaps next time you should not inform your
subject that he or she is being ‘forced’ to pick particular cards.”
“Yes,
yes, yes,” Tobin said, slapping his forehead and pulling out the worn hardcopy
of 99 Tricks. “I forgot—I should have been running patter to distract
you while you pick your cards. I’m supposed to tell you the story of ‘Wild Bill
Hickok and the Dead Man’s Hand.’ ”
Skon’s
eyebrow raised a fraction of a millimeter. He lowered his padd again,
interested despite himself. “Explain.”
“It’s
an Earth legend,” Tobin said, flipping to the correct page. “The tale of how
one of their law enforcement officials was murdered. He was playing a game
called poker—”
“I am
familiar with the game,” Skon said.
“—And
was shot in the back by a criminal. After he died, Hickok’s companions checked
his cards and discovered he was holding two black aces and two black eights.
Since then it’s been called the Dead Man’s Hand.”
“Why
would his companions check his cards?” Skon asked.
Tobin
shrugged. “How should I know? They’re humans. Who knows why they do anything?”
Skon’s
eyebrow climbed even higher, acknowledging the validity of Tobin’s comment,
then raised his padd again and resumed reading. Tobin smiled faintly, glad that
he had amused Skon, or whatever passed for amusement among Vulcans. Tobin had
known other Vulcans and found most of them brusque and haughty despite their
espoused views about diversity. Perhaps Skon was different because, as Tobin
had learned, his father had been a diplomat. Tobin suspected that having a
diplomat for a father would make one pretty accepting of other people—even
humans. From a point just to the left of the center of his being, an amused
voice said, Even pesty little Trills with too much time on their hands.
Tobin’s
hands jerked and the cards he had been gathering fluttered wildly into the air.
Lela, he thought, almost saying the name out loud. The doctors at the
Symbiosis Institute assured him that the voice he sometimes heard was only his
imagination, that the persona of Dax’s only previous host had been completely
integrated into his own, but it still made him jump every time he imagined he
heard her. Tobin knew he could be annoying and he didn’t need his
subconscious—or whatever the voice was—reminding him. It was exactly the sort
of thing that was starting to make him wonder what the Symbiosis Evaluation
Board had been thinking when they chose him to host Dax. What did they see
that I can’t? he wondered as he gathered up the cards and stacked them into
a deck.
He saw
that Skon had already deposited his tray at the recycler and was standing at
the door, looking back toward him to say, “I am returning to the lab. If you
would care to accompany me, we can review the adjustments you made to the phase
transition coils before we perform another test.”
Tobin
smiled gratefully and leapt up—too quickly as it turned out. He banged his knee
on the lip of the table and points of light exploded behind his eyes. Even as
he hopped around the room trying to get the pain under control while not
careening into other tables or chairs, there came a low, ominous thud, then a
shock and a shudder.
Tobin
Dax’s last coherent thought before everything went dark was: Oh, great! Now
what have I done?
When
the darkness began to recede, he was aware of only his aching head, his burning
lungs, and something stabbing, stabbing, stabbing him in the eyes.
It was
a sign, a sign from the Creator. A sign that he never should have left home,
never should have let himself be lured away from Trill by these humans and
their insane ideas. It was a sign that said, HULL BREACH.
Tobin
was in a very cramped place. When his vision cleared, he recognized it as the
ship’s primary Jefferies tube, the one that ran almost the entire length of the
ship, from the computer core to engineering. He was wearing a rebreather, no
doubt because there was smoke everywhere. Skon was there, too, his back against
the opposite wall, calmly keying commands into his padd. A thin optical cable
ran from the device into a dataport in the curved wall.
Tobin
tried to sit up, but instead bumped his head against the low ceiling. Skon
reached out and pressed him back against the wall. “The artificial gravity has
failed or been deactivated,” he said. “Do not exert yourself unnecessarily
until you have become acclimated.”
Tobin
inhaled deeply, letting the rebreather do its job, and felt his stomach shift a
bit on its moorings. He had experienced zero-g once or twice in his life and
though he didn’t like it, he wasn’t cursed with the hopeless disorientation
some people suffered. “What happened?” he asked. His voice echoed in his head,
reverberated by the plastic cup over his mouth and nose.
“I am
attempting to determine that now,” Skon said, studying his padd. “The computer
core has been damaged or gone off-line, though several of the peripheral
servers are still functioning. The damage is ... considerable. There are hull
breaches on several decks, including the bridge. Most of the critical hull
surfaces have buckled and one of the warp nacelles appears to have been shorn
off. The Heisenberg is no longer spaceworthy.”
“Did we
collide with something?”
“Unlikely,”
Skon said. “Captain Monsees’s crew is competent and the deflectors were
functioning properly. The sensor logs show some sort of space/time rupture just
before the ship dropped out of warp. Someone released an explosive near our
flight path. Possibly a small amount of antimatter, but more likely a nuclear
device.”
“That
would do it, wouldn’t it?” Tobin said. “But who’d do such a thing?”
“External
sensors are still functional—barely. But they detect the type of ionic energy
associated with Romulan drive units.”
“Romulans?”
Tobin gasped, almost
spitting into his rebreather. “But the captain said that the route we were
taking to Alpha Centauri is one of the most secure in the sector! And their
ships don’t even have warp drive! The only way a Romulan ship could get this
far away from their own space at sublight ...”
“...
Would be if they had left their region many years ago,” Skon confirmed. “But
considering even what little we know about the Romulans, such a plan is not so
surprising.”
Tobin
slowly nodded his head, working his way through the problem. He knew that the
humans and Romulans had been engaged in a vicious border war for the better
part of three years, ever since one of Earth’s exploratory ships had strayed
into Romulan-claimed territory, the galactic equivalent of stepping into a
hornet’s nest. Very little was known about the fiercely xenophobic Romulans and
the only thing everyone agreed on was that they were ruthless, implacable foes.
It was
a commonly held opinion among the local sentient species that the only thing
that had saved Earth from being overrun was its FTL drive, and a cunning that
Tobin, for one, found hard to reconcile with their offhand, sometimes foolish
good humor. Ironically, as he and Skon had discussed on more than one occasion,
the Terran-Romulan conflict could easily be interpreted as one of the reasons
for the growing sense of political, scientific, and even military unity found
among Earth’s nearest neighbors.
“What
could they possibly want from us?” Tobin asked. A thought struck him and he
felt his heart skip a beat. “The prototype? You think they know what we have in
the lab?”
Skon
shook his head. “Unlikely. The device had not even reached the theoretical
stage when they presumably left their space. No, if we are correct and have
been attacked by Romulans, then I believe they are unaware of the purpose of
our voyage.” Light from his padd’s display danced across Skon’s angular
features, cutting deep shadows around his mouth and eyes. “The lab has not
opened to space,” he reported. “I think we can assume that the prototype is
intact.”
“Well,
that’s something,” Tobin said, relieved. “When the Romulans leave, we can
dismantle it—take the data core and use the escape pods. ...”
“That
will not be possible,” Skon reported. “All the escape pods are gone.”
Tobin
was stunned. “Gone? They left without us? Captain Monsees would never do
that.”
“I
agree,” Skon said. “So we must postulate another scenario that fits the facts:
If the crew did not escape, then perhaps the Romulans jettisoned the pods to
make escape impossible.”
“But
what could possibly be so important that they’d risk ...” Then he understood.
“Oh, no,” he whispered.
“Yes,”
Skon said, closing his padd and slipping it into his belt. “It is the only
logical conclusion.” He pulled out a small worklight and shined a low beam down
the length of the Jefferies tube. “This leads to engineering. We can confirm
our theory there.”
“And
then what?” Tobin said, pushing himself off the wall, his stomach wobbling
slightly.
“And
then,” Skon said, floating down the tube into the darkness, “we will do
whatever logic dictates.”
Moving
through the Jefferies tube in zero-g turned out to be less arduous than Tobin
had anticipated, rather like swimming with a mild current. It was one of the
few times in his life that he could remember being thankful for his
modest stature. The biggest problem, it turned out, was resisting the urge to
push off the walls and zip along. But Skon, nearly half a meter taller and ten
centimeters broader, was in the lead and kept their progress at a controlled
rate. Closing in on engineering, they found an entrance to the air circulation
system, undipped the grate, and struggled into the considerably narrower space.
Fortunately, Skon took the precaution of bracing himself against the duct walls
when he stopped or he would have been shoved through the grillwork overlooking
the engine room when Tobin bumped up against his feet.
Skon
pushed himself up toward the top of the duct so Tobin could creep along beneath
him until he could see through the grillwork.
He saw
the Romulans at once.
There
were two in plain view, clearly humanoid, though their armored EVA suits and
the reflective visors on their helmets made it impossible to say anything more
definite about them. That they hadn’t removed their helmets suggested either
that they didn’t trust the Heisenberg’s atmosphere, or they had doubts
about the ship’s continued reliability as a container of said gases. Both
soldiers held large energy weapons that Tobin presumed were the Romulans’
notorious disrupters, named for their tendency to shake apart matter rather
than, like the Terran lasers, bump up its energy state until it was vaporized.
The
Romulans were herding prisoners toward the maintenance airlock on the starboard
side, moving confidently in the zero-g. Tobin was relieved to see both Captain
Monsees and First Mate Burgwin; the computer specialists Mira Laasa and Katie
Lo; the Martian mathematician whose name he couldn’t pronounce; Heyes the
navigator and Chief Engineer Jarman; and two other engineers whose names
escaped him. All were apparently injured. It looked like nine survivors, or
half the ship’s complement if he didn’t include himself and Skon. Tobin pointed
and whispered, “Over by the hatch. Do you see?”
Skon
nodded, then spoke softly. “Personal thruster units. They came in through the
airlock.” That sounded right to Tobin. When the ship dropped out of warp, the
Romulans must have had a boarding party ready to cross over. But why were they
herding the prisoners toward the hatch? To transfer them to the Romulan ship?
No, impossible—there was no way they could do that without EVA suits.
The
Romulans arranged the prisoners in a loose semicircle around the hatch, then
stepped back far enough that they could cover the entire group in a crossfire.
When they were finished, a third armored figure floated out from behind the
warp core, paused briefly to study the blue light that danced within the
containment fields, then pushed off until he came to a stop in front of the
airlock hatch. The Romulan commander—and Tobin had no doubt that was who this
was—peered through the small round window, then tapped on it with the knuckle
of his armored glove.
Tobin
almost jumped back when a hand slapped the window from the other side. It was
replaced almost immediately by a face, a round, soft face—one of the project
technicians—a woman named Williams. Tobin had been introduced to her when he
had boarded, but they hadn’t exchanged a word since because she worked the
gamma shift and he tended to work during alpha hours. Her unprotected face was
smashed flat up against the thick viewport as she screamed soundlessly at the
Romulan. Tobin was surprised to see that she seemed more angry than frightened.
In fact, though he was by no means proficient at lip-reading, Tobin was almost
certain that Williams was cursing at the Romulan.
The
Romulan leader moved his face closer to the window, apparently so he could
study her expressions more carefully. It was disconcerting to Tobin to watch
the woman go on and on, her breath fogging the glass. Everyone—including
Williams—knew what was about to happen, but the tension of waiting for it to
occur was almost more than Tobin could take.
Finally,
Williams’ cursing subsided and she only stared at the Romulan, her breaths coming short and fast. Then, almost
offhandedly, the commander flicked a finger toward one of the guards who then
jabbed at a switch on the airlock controls. Three telltales over the hatch
turned red, one after the other, and the face in the window disappeared. Tobin
thought he heard a sound of air being expelled, though he knew that this was
impossible. Then, he heard it again and realized that the noise was coming from
Skon, though whether it was a moan, a sigh, or a prayer, Tobin never knew for
certain. All the scientists and crewmen seemed to sag into themselves. The
telltales cycled through again and the lights shifted back to green.
The
commander turned back to his prisoners, then walked the perimeter of the room
and pointed to different pieces of machinery, control panels, diagnostic
devices, until he finally returned to where the research team and crew now
stood huddled together, some staring at the floor, others glowering at their
captors. The commander prodded first one, then another team member toward
various pieces of equipment, but each and every one sullenly refused to move.
“The message is clear,” Skon said. “ ‘Cooperate or die.’ ”
“But it
doesn’t look like any of them are going to do what he asks,” Tobin whispered.
“That’s ... that’s ... I’m not sure what that is. Incredibly stupid? Foolishly
brave?”
“I have
observed,” Skon replied, in a manner that would have sounded admiring if he
were anything but a Vulcan, “that humans are a very stubborn people.”
The
Romulan commander had clearly come to the same conclusion, and decided that another demonstration of the
consequences of noncompliance would have little impact if the prisoners didn’t
have an opportunity to ponder the first one. He ordered the guards to move the
humans down a short hall that, Tobin knew, led to a cargo hold. Even as the
prisoners were herded off, a fourth Romulan emerged from the depths of the
engine room and began to study control surfaces while the leader turned his
attention to the reaction chamber.
Tobin
and Skon eased back into a recessed area that was far enough away from the
grill that they could speak in near normal tones without the risk of being
overheard. “You were right,” Tobin said. “They’re after the warp technology.”
“That,”
Skon replied, “would be a logical conclusion. It is suspected that the Romulans
are years, perhaps decades, away from developing warp drive. However, if they
had a model to study in detail ...”
“Yes,
yes. It won’t take them long to figure it out. Fine,” Tobin said, his voice
rising sharply with impatience. “So, what are our options?”
“They
are almost as limited as our resources,” Skon said. “I would order our
priorities thus: first, prevent the Romulans from taking possession of the Heisenberg.
Second, if possible, free our comrades and escape.”
“And,
third,” Tobin added, “save the prototype. Think of the combined years of work
and research that have been sunk into it. We have to figure out some way to
salvage the databases, if nothing else. I don’t think any of the labs that have
contributed work have copies of all the files, and there’s work we’ve
done on board that no one else has.”
“I have
not overlooked this,” Skon replied. “But I think we must consider it a distant
third objective. Preserving knowledge is a high priority, but logic dictates
that a higher one is preserving the lives of the device’s creators, and
preventing that knowledge from falling into the hands of those who might use it
for evil purposes.”
Tobin
stared. “Skon, I’m ...” he started to say. “Sorry, it’s just that I don’t think
I’ve ever heard a Vulcan use the word ‘evil.’ ”
“Do not
misunderstand me, Tobin Dax,” Skon said. “Evil—malice, malevolence—call it what
you will, is not an abstract concept ascribable to some supernatural power. The
desire to gain advantage over others either through deliberate action or
inaction is one of the fundamental motivations in sentient beings. How could
logic overlook such primal behavior?”
“I see
your point, but it still doesn’t address the question of what we’re going to
do!”
“Let us
first rule out the things we cannot do,” Skon said. “We cannot overpower
the Romulans with force. I counted four armed soldiers and four thruster packs.
I believe we can safely surmise there are no others, but the odds are still two
to one against us, and we have no weapons. The element of surprise might aid us
slightly, but not sufficiently. The Heisenberg, as we discussed
previously, can no longer achieve warp speeds without substantial repair work.
The Romulan vessel would enable us to escape, but we have no way to commandeer
it, and our escape pods are no longer an option.”
“I
don’t think I like where this is going,” Tobin said.
Skon
did not respond immediately and Tobin would have sworn that he could hear the
sorted and resorted variables tumbling around in Skon’s mind. Finally, he said,
“Our options have dwindled to one, Tobin: We must destroy the Heisenberg.”
“What?”
Tobin hissed. “That’s the
best logic’ can come up with?”
Skon
held out his hand in a soothing gesture. “Be calm, Tobin,” he said.
“Considering how carefully the Romulans planned the attack, it is remarkable
that even that recourse is available to us.”
“But to
destroy the ship ... the prototype ... everyone aboard ...”
“The
Romulans are not known for taking captives,” Skon said. “They will likely
execute our shipmates anyway, whether they cooperate or not. The same is true
for us. The ship is too small for us to avoid detection indefinitely.”
“But
still ...” Tobin said, his mind racing. Tobin Dax would be the first to admit
that he was not the cleverest Trill to ever grace the face of his planet—“Not
the sharpest blade in the knife block,” as his mother (a wonderful cook) used
to say. His successes as an engineer were, he believed, more attributable to
plodding perseverance rather than brilliance or insight. His only notable
“talent”—if it could be called such a thing—was his ability to panic, or, more
accurately, to think his way through panic. Rather than making his mind
lock up, panic sent Tobin into cognitive overdrive. Perhaps it was this ability
that made the Symbiosis Commission decide he would be a worthwhile host.
So when
Tobin wrapped his mind around the idea that he might soon become a random and
loose affiliation of atoms, his mind began leaping through possibilities until,
without thinking, he blurted out, “What if ... what if we blow up only part of
the ship?”
Skon’s
eyes narrowed. “Explain.”
“We
could rig some kind of ... wait. Give me your padd.” Skon handed the device to
Tobin. “I don’t know this interface. How do you call up schematics? Oh, wait.”
He rumbled with the keys. “There. All right—look here. The Heisenberg is
designed like a lot of Terran warp-capable ships. Basically, it’s just a big
tube with warp nacelles slung underneath the back half. Engineering is
separated from the habitat section by a safety junction with blast doors and
heavy shielding on either end, the idea being to protect the rest of the ship
in the event of a radiation mishap.” As Tobin’s thoughts grew clearer, he began
to work the padd more confidently, his fingers flying over the controls.
“Suppose we placed explosive charges here ... and here inside the junction.”
Two points near the center of the ship schematic began to glow. “We could blow
free of the engineering hull and push ourselves away with steering thrusters.
Wait! Are the steering thrusters still available?” Tobin checked the diagnostic
Skon had run earlier and nodded. “Yes. See? Here—we could fire them from an
interface in the Jefferies tube.”
“To
what end?” Skon asked. “Even if we could, as you say, blow ourselves free from
the engineering section, the Romulans would still have the warp engines, as
well as enough fire power on their own ship to destroy the habitat section.”
“Not
if we blow up the engines first!”
Skon
was silent for several seconds, forcing Tobin to reflect on what he had just
said. What am I thinking about? What’s come over me? When did the solution
to all my problems become blowing up something?
Skon
took the padd from Tobin and began to work the controls, probably, the Trill
decided, to shut down the schematics on the display to conserve the padd’s
charge. When that didn’t happen, he leaned forward to see what Skon was working
on and saw a surprisingly realistic slow-motion wireframe animation of the Heisenberg,
breaking apart into sections. Then one of the sections—engineering—exploded
in a flash. In the first three cycles, the habitat also exploded, but each time
Skon pushed the simulation so that the two sections were farther and farther
apart. Finally, the habitat survived—at which point he began to try to figure
all the possible responses of the Romulan ship.
Five
minutes later, Skon shut off the simulation and looked up at Tobin. His right
eyebrow arched up. “It is an intriguing concept, Tobin Dax. How do you plan to
destroy the warp core?”
Tobin
tried to recall everything he had learned about the Heisenberg’s warp
engines since coming aboard. “Well,” he began, “the intermix chamber is a fussy
piece of machinery. Even if the whole system is on standby, we could probably
touch off a core breach if we disrupt the coolant system. An explosion like
that would blind the sensors on the Romulan ship. Maybe even disable it if it’s
close enough to dispatch a boarding party. But, wait—oh, damn! The cooling
system isn’t accessible through the ship’s computer nodes so that they won’t go
off-line if the system crashes. We don’t stand a chance of disabling the
control systems with the Romulans in there.” Skon folded his padd and slipped
it into his sash, then flicked on his small flashlight. His underlit features
were grim and, Tobin thought, distressingly demonic, though his soft tone
belied his expression. “Tobin,” he said, “I do not believe you have considered
all the possibilities.”
“This,”
Tobin said, sometime after they’d made their way to the project lab, “is an
extraordinarily bad idea.”
“You
may be correct, but it was, after all, your idea.”
“It
wasn’t my idea to use the prototype.”
“Not as
such,” Skon replied. “But it was your idea to try to set off a chain reaction
in the warp core by blocking the coolant flow. As you pointed out, we cannot
shut off the coolant system from inside engineering, so we must do the next
best thing by placing something inside the coolant tank. I believe that
lab table will have enough mass. We may be fortunate and the change in pressure
will burst the tank. The Terran systems are, as you said, ‘fussy.’ ”
“But
even if that works and they don’t notice the drain on the system and the
whole power grid doesn’t blow out,” Tobin inhaled deeply, feeling himself to be
on the verge of hyperventilation, “... I don’t want to do this!”
“Do you
lack confidence in your own work?” Skon asked. “Have you not seen the test
results? It should be extremely safe. Uncomfortable, perhaps, but safe.”
“Couldn’t
we just ... oh, I don’t know ...” Tobin paused, waiting for panic to produce an
inspiration.
Nothing
came. Either he wasn’t panicked enough or his sense of personal danger was
beginning to burn out from overuse. “All right,” Tobin sighed. “Fine. I’ll do
it.” He weakly waved Skon toward the ventilation shaft they had used to enter
the laboratory. “Be careful. No sense in both of us getting killed.”
Skon
pushed off and floated toward the open vent, Tobin’s sarcasm apparently lost on
him. “Give me ten minutes to reach engineering and get into position.”
“Fine,
fine,” Tobin said wearily. “It’ll take me at least that long to power up the
equipment and move the lab table into position.”
“Of
course,” Skon said as he disappeared into the vent. “Do not forget that the
table still has as much mass as it had when the gravity was functioning.”
“Yes,
yes,” Tobin said, running his hands over the familiar controls. Lights glowed
under the shielded chamber. The computers began to crunch gigaquads of data and
check redundant systems. “Mass,” he repeated. “No problem.” The main console
hummed to life. Tobin smiled a small, satisfied smile. Maybe ... maybe this
wouldn’t be so bad after all. It was a machine, one that he understood inside
and out, that he had helped design and construct. He trusted it—the theory
behind it, anyway—in some ways more than he trusted himself. Perhaps that would
be enough.
Less
trustworthy were the two bombs and the makeshift retrieval device he and Skon
had cobbled together. Not that he didn’t trust Skon’s workmanship on the
retrieval device, but there hadn’t been time for anything other than the most
rudimentary testing. The bombs—well, a bomb was a bomb. Rigging together power
cells to explode was no test of any capable engineer’s abilities. The trick,
really, was keeping them from going off prematurely.
The lab
table, unfortunately, turned out to be a bigger problem than he had
anticipated. Though Tobin was now getting used to pushing himself around in
zero-g, he had no idea how to manipulate large, bulky objects. He was just
about to give the table a tremendous shove toward the prototype when it
occurred to him that he would then have to race around to the other side of the
table and stop it before it smashed through the bulkhead. Dislodging the table
and moving it carefully into place took much more time than he had allotted.
Even as Tobin settled the table into place, his chronometer began to chime.
Skon was in place, waiting for Tobin’s signal.
He
walked back to the control panel and checked the displays. Everything looked
optimum, which was surprising, considering how badly the Heisenberg had
been damaged. On the other hand, that was how they had designed it; the power
supply could not be interrupted.
Tobin
initiated the charge cycle and the generators hummed to life. Four large scanning
units rose from their cradles on the perimeter of the chamber and locked into place with an intimidating ka-chunk.
He rechecked the coordinates, slapped the COMMIT switch, and slid his hand to the row of control levers.
The
telltale blinked green and Tobin listened carefully to the hum of the pattern
buffers. When the tone hit the correct pitch, he gently shoved the row of
levers slowly downward. The table began to glow faintly on the stage, then
shimmered and shone with a silvery phosphorescence. By the time he had pushed
the row of levers halfway down, Tobin could see through the table and its
outline began to waiver. Then, checking all the scanners to make sure he was on
target, he quickly reviewed all the readings and, finding there was no degradation
in the signal, pushed the levers to the bottom of the row. The hum rose to a
shrill crescendo, then quickly died away. The table was gone.
Or,
more precisely—assuming the prototype matter transporter had performed as
intended—the table was now reassembled in the warp engine coolant tank. With
any luck, it had already become wedged in an intake valve, severely curtailing
the flow of coolant to the intermix chamber. The temperature change would set
off an alert to engineering stations on the bridge and the chief engineer’s bug
board. Since no one was manning either of those stations, failure to correct
the problem within five minutes would set off the shipwide alarm. Skon had
figured that would give them about eighteen minutes before the core went critical.
Of course, the Romulans would know something was wrong and would probably begin
tearing apart the engine room to
find the source of the problem. They might even figure out that it had
something to do with the coolant system, but not soon enough to do anything
about it.
The
transporter scanners dropped back into standby position and the generators
began the recharge cycle in preparation for the next transport. It all seemed
so noisy that Tobin began to worry about someone coming to investigate.
Worrying about that unlikely possibility made it easier to not think about the
other, more real terrors he was about to face.
Tobin
tried to program in the next set of coordinates, but his hands shook so badly
that he kept fumbling the settings. “You don’t want to get this wrong,” he said
aloud, willing himself to be calm. After the third failed attempt, Tobin turned
away from the console and patted his pockets in search of the deck of cards.
Running through sleights sometimes had a soothing effect on him. Sometimes.
He slid
the deck out of its box and restacked the cards to run Dead Man’s Hand. Just as
he finished, the warp core Klaxon sounded—much sooner than he had expected—and
Tobin started back to the controls, banging his shin against the console.
Knowing that Skon was waiting for him to act gave Tobin the focus he needed, so
he ignored the pain, slid the cards into his pocket, and entered the settings
correctly on the first try. Figuring out how long to give himself before the
recall timer kicked in was difficult, but he finally settled on ten minutes. If
he couldn’t set up the bombs in that time, it wouldn’t really matter.
After
clipping the retrieval device—a thirty-centimeter tube containing an easily
detectable isotope—to his belt, Tobin guided the two explosives into the
transporter chamber. The first humanoid ever to be transported is going to
be carrying two very large bombs with him, Tobin mused, shaking his head. This
really isn’t what we had in mind. He stepped into the transport chamber,
inhaled once deeply and let the breath out slowly. The pattern buffers began to
cycle and the sensors ka-chunked up out of their racks. For some reason,
the noise made Tobin think about the amusement park rides his brothers had
dared him to go on when he was a boy—the kind that would whir, clang, and groan
before they began to subject him to sudden, sadistic changes in vector. Just
before the rides would begin, everyone—everyone—would say the same
thing. Tobin found himself saying it aloud as the hum of the generator reached
its highest pitch. “Well ... here we go.”
Skon
floated cross-legged by the grill overlooking the engineering section, his eyes
half-closed in meditation, fingertips lightly touching the floor. He felt the Heisenberg
shudder through his fingers. A Klaxon sounded—loud, shrill, and insistent. These
humans, Skon thought. Studies had shown that a low-pitched, less strident
sound was a more effective alarm, but, no, they insisted on this. His
ears rang, but no more than he had anticipated.
The
Romulans responded in an orderly fashion: Two were attempting to determine if
their investigations had tripped the alarm, while the other pair darted around engineering looking for other signs of
trouble. Unable to discover the cause of the Klaxon, the leader sent one of his
men out of engineering on some errand while directing the others to continue
their examination of the warp core. The leader himself moved out of sight to
the other side of the core. In the scenarios Skon had been running through
during his meditations, this outcome had been predicted seventy-three percent
of the time.
Skon
fingerwalked down the side of the vent to a grill he knew he could open without
being seen. There was no need for greater stealth since the Klaxon effectively
concealed any and all noise he could conceivably make. Slipping through the
open grill, he pushed off the wall at an angle and floated toward the ceiling.
Skon did not have a great deal of experience with zero-g, but these were simple
calculations of force, drag, and inertia. Assuming his calculations were
correct—and, naturally, they were—he would come to a stop approximately eight
meters above the two guards. It was an easy matter then to push off from the
ceiling and drop down silently behind the pair.
One
thing troubled him as he fell. He’d had an excellent view of the engine room
from the ceiling. The Romulan commander, it seemed, had disappeared.
One crisis at a time.
Skon
had noted earlier a soft spot in the Romulans’ armored EVA suits—where the
helmet met the torso. No doubt it was meant to improve their mobility, but it
was also a vulnerability Skon could exploit. He reached out with both hands as
he descended, applying a nerve
pinch to each man that rendered both of them instantly unconscious. He disarmed
the pair, propelled them into the airlock, and then shoved the thruster packs
in after them. Skon had no desire to cause any unnecessary loss of life, and if
all went according to plan, he would be able to return in time to open the
exterior hatch so that the Romulans could escape before the core went critical.
Disabling the airlock controls so that the inner hatch could only be opened
from Skon’s side was only the work of a minute.
All was
going well. The third soldier was still off on his errand. There was only the
matter of the Romulan commander, the wild card in Skon’s calculations, to
contend with. Wild card, Skon thought. When did that word
enter my vocabulary? He would have to query Tobin about the word’s
etymology if they ever saw each other again. In any case, if Skon could free
his companions from the cargo hold and send them through to the habitat section
within the next ten minutes, it was unlikely that the commander would be able
to regain control of the situation.
Pushing
off toward the short passage that led to the cargo hold, Skon looked right and
left, then straight up, remembering his own attack on the guards. Nothing. Skon
decided the most logical scenario was that the commander had followed the guard
out of engineering, which meant that the odds of Tobin being found had to be
recalculated. But, no, he thought, focusing on the task at hand. Free
the prisoners first. Improve the odds as much as possible.
Skon
released the lock, and the storage room door slid open, revealing the Romulan
commander with a disrupter leveled only centimeters from Skon’s chest.
There’s
something wrong with the transporter, Tobin decided. Why is this taking so long? He kept waiting to be
there, to be there, but the silvery curtain lingered, shimmering,
tingling, and finally burning. Tobin wanted to lift his arm and check his
chronometer, but found he couldn’t move. His eyes were dry and he desperately
wanted to blink, but he couldn’t do that either. The pattern buffers, he
thought. My molecular structure is too much for them. The transporter
doesn’t have enough memory to store the pattern of a sentient being—No,
two sentient beings! He began to wonder how long the transport beam could
hold his pattern before it started to degrade. Six seconds? Seven? And what
happens if it tries to reassemble me without the portions that have degraded
and been lost? Tobin tried to imagine how the computer would decide which
pieces would be left out. A kidney? Part of my brain? The symbiont?
And
then someone shoved icicles into Tobin’s eyes. Silver icicles. Flaming silver
icicles. There came a shattering sense of dislocation, of his vital parts being
turned inside out. He tried to scream, but his lungs were flapping like
shredded balloons in a hot wind, his heart a dried up, shriveled husk. He heard
a small voice in the back of his head say, Stop being so dramatic.
Lela!
Tobin thought, Save me!
I’m dead. Save yourself.
And
then he was floating in the center of the junction that separated the habitat
from engineering. His ears were ringing. Tobin wanted to look at his
chronometer, wanted to know how much time had passed, but he couldn’t lift his
arms. Everything felt simultaneously leaden and tingly, but then he realized
that this could be accounted for by the fact that he was gripping the handles
to the two makeshift bombs so tightly that his knuckles had turned white. Tobin
released both and lifted his hands to his face. Encouraging sign—all fingers
present and accounted for. And his ears still worked; they continued to be
assaulted by the warp core alarm.
Tobin
retrieved the bombs and went to work. The job was simple: Open the access
panels, tap into the power feed, set the timers, and seal the panels up again.
The converted power cells were so generic in appearance that few of the ship’s
crew, let alone Romulan invaders, would recognize them for what they’d become.
Slamming shut the second hatch, Tobin began to feel some sense of relief. He
checked his chronometer, saw that he still had a couple minutes before the
transporter retrieved him, and decided that the best thing to do would be to
find someplace to hide.
He
never heard the hatch open behind him, never knew anyone was there until he
felt the hand on his shoulder.
Without
knowing exactly how it happened, Tobin’s face was pressed into a bulkhead, the
cold muzzle of a disrupter jammed into his cheek. He flailed, tried to fend off
the attacker, but couldn’t twist or turn, couldn’t stop the hand that was
patting him down, looking for weapons, identification, gold and precious gems, who knew what? All Tobin knew for sure
was that he was a small and helpless Trill in a large and perilous universe.
Then
the guard let him go.
When he
turned around—slowly, so as not to provoke reprisal—Tobin saw several familiar
items drifting lazily in midair: tools, his rebreather, the hardcopy of 99
Tricks. The Romulan was holding the only two articles that held any
interest for him: the retrieval device and Tobin’s deck of cards. How much time
had passed since he had last looked at his chronometer? If the transporter
retrieved the Romulan, there could be all sorts of complications, not the least
of which would be that Tobin would be left in the junction with two bombs
primed to explode any moment. Panic welled up and Tobin did the only thing he
could think of: He pushed off the wall and took a swipe at the retrieval
device.
And
missed.
The
guard twisted to the side at the last second and, instead of the retrieval
device he desperately desired, the confused Trill found himself holding the
deck of cards. The Romulan’s response was instantaneous and, Tobin thought,
pretty reasonable: He raised his weapon and aimed it at Tobin’s head.
“Cards!
They’re only cards!” Tobin shouted, holding the deck in front of him. Desperate
to prove they were harmless, Tobin fanned the deck and extended it toward the
Romulan and exclaimed, “Here! Pick a card! Any card!”
The
Romulan hesitated. The weapon didn’t waiver, nor did it fire. Tobin pointed at
the cards and tugged at one to
demonstrate. Cautiously, without moving his weapon, the Romulan put the
retrieval device under his arm, then pulled out the card Tobin had indicated.
Holding it close to his silvery visor, the Romulan appeared to study the
symbols on the pasteboard. Stunned that he was still alive and wanting to
prolong that condition for as long as possible, Tobin launched into his Wild
Bill Hickok patter and extended the fan again. The Romulan took a second card,
then a third. Tobin continued with his patter, but his mind was focused on
other thoughts: This should not be working. Why hasn’t he killed me? Then
he seized upon the only answer that made sense: He’s an alien. He’s never
seen a deck of cards and he doesn’t know my language. For all he knows, I could
be offering him useful information, maybe even military secrets!
And
then, just as the Romulan was selecting his fourth card, Tobin heard the first
notes of the now-familiar chiming. Tiny silver pinpoints of light glimmered in
the air around the retrieval device. Tobin wondered if the Romulan would be
able to keep his wits about him long enough to fire off a couple shots before
the dematerialization process was complete. He decided that the answer was yes,
probably he would and once again lunged at the retrieval device.
He
managed to grab the device in one hand this time, but the guard was quicker and
managed to clamp down on it with his elbow, twisting to the side and throwing
Tobin against the bulkhead. Tobin heard a crackling noise and felt the air
above his left ear suddenly grow very hot. And, then, his head was gone.
The air
was gone, too, and a silver curtain blocked his sight.
When
the curtain dissipated, he was still disoriented, his vision occluded by a
flurry of red, black, and white rectangles. His cards had slipped from his
grasp when he rematerialized, and were now slowly floating across the room.
Tobin reached out automatically and plucked the three of hearts, then the six
of spades, and then the king of clubs, from midair. The queen of diamonds
pirouetted gracefully before him until Tobin reached out and stilled her dance.
This, as it turned out, was a bad idea. The queen had brought along an armed
escort and one of them was aiming a disrupter at his head.
Skon
waited for the flash, the shock, the heat of dissolution. But the Romulan
didn’t fire—did not, in fact, move at all for several seconds, during which
Skon had noted the humans within the cargo hold, huddled together behind the
metal grillwork of a storage cage. As ever, Skon did the most logical thing he
could think of: He surrendered his procured weapons.
Suddenly
the commander was on him, the metallic tips of his cold, unyielding gauntlets
digging into Skon’s throat, shoving him roughly against a bulkhead. He expected
to die then, his larynx and windpipe crushed in the mailed fist.
But
once again, he didn’t.
Instead,
the Romulan twisted Skon’s head slowly from side to side, the helmet moving in
close, seeming to examine every contour of his prisoner’s face. Skon stared back at the Romulan’s visor, trying to
understand what was going on, but saw only his own distorted reflection. Am
I truly so alien to him, Skon wondered, or has he seen my kind before?
The
question would follow Skon to the end of his days. For at that moment, a low,
eerie chiming sound began to build in the air, like raindrops dripping onto a
crystal chandelier. Both turned toward the noise, and though Skon had a strong
suspicion about its source, he found himself as transfixed by the spectacle as
the Romulan.
It was
Tobin, materializing out of thin air, a Romulan disrupter clenched in his
shaking fist.
Unfortunately,
he was floating upside down and facing in the wrong direction, but the Romulan
leader was so stunned by the sight that Skon was able to relieve him of all
three disrupters before he could react.
Tobin
flailed around and righted himself. He took aim at the door of the storage
cage. “Move back,” he told the humans, and fired, shattering the lock. “We’re
almost out of time. Head for the habitat section. Now!”
Captain
Monsees emerged from the cage and accepted the disruptor that Skon handed to her.
“What’s going on?” she asked. “What’s the plan?”
“We
must abandon the engineering section as quickly as possible,” Skon said. “There
will be a warp core breach in less than seven minutes.”
The
captain’s face fell, but before she could say a word, Skon explained Tobin’s
plan. After listening, Monsees closed her eyes and pinched the bridge of her nose with her thumb and index finger. “You
couldn’t come up with anything else?” she asked Tobin.
“Uh ...
not really, no,” he replied uncomfortably. Finally, Monsees ordered her crew to
help those less experienced with zero-g toward the exits. Then, when the last
man was safely away, she turned to look at the Romulan commander. “What about
him and his men?” she asked Skon.
“Two
are trapped in the airlock. One is unaccounted for.”
“No he
isn’t,” Tobin said quietly.
Monsees
looked at him, then at the disrupter in his hand, and nodded. “I assume you
intend to let them go?”
“We are
ill-equipped to handle prisoners, Captain,” Skon reminded her, “I see no
alternative.”
“I do,”
Monsees said with barely contained rage as she glared at the Romulan. “After
what they did to our people, to Williams—”
“Captain,”
Skon said gently. “You are not a Romulan.”
Monsees
continued staring at her warped reflection in the Romulan’s faceplate. “No, I’m
not,” she said finally, and turned toward the exit. “Get them the hell off my
ship.”
Tobin’s
mouth tightened, then he gestured with his weapon, urging the Romulan toward
the airlock. When they opened the inner hatch, they found the two other Romulans
were conscious, both already wearing their EVA packs. Their commander floated
into the chamber but almost as soon as the door slid shut, Tobin saw his helmet up against the
viewport. Tobin could see from the way he was shaking his head that the commander
was screaming into his helmet, possibly cursing them as Williams had cursed
him. Then, his hand was pressed up against the window, two fingers raised.
Tobin understood. Only two! he was saying. Only two! Where is my
third man?
Tobin
thought about Williams. Then he shrugged apologetically, waved goodbye, and hit
the emergency release on the outer door. It blew open and the Romulans rode the
wave of decompression out into space, dwindling to pinpoints within seconds as
they fell away from the Heisenberg.
“We
have four minutes, Tobin,” Skon said. From somewhere deep in the engine room
there came a dull thud and a blast of warm air. “Perhaps less.”
Tobin’s
plan to separate the ship was successful. The power cells detonated on command,
and the blast doors held as the ship broke apart. Skon fired the thrusters at
full burn from the Jefferies tube, and the habitat section moved off,
accelerating as it went.
The
core explosion, when it came, was quite spectacular. The external sensors were
knocked off-line by the blast, so the survival of the Romulan ship was never
confirmed or refuted. The shockwave badly buffeted the remaining half of the Heisenberg,
but it also helped push it away from the worst of the lingering radiation.
Later, Captain Monsees confirmed that their distress beacon was functional.
They would be found.
All
hands had a great deal of work to do to restore gravity and secure the Heisenberg from any other mishaps, so it
was several hours before Tobin and Skon had time to speak. Tobin found him sitting
in the only lounge that had not been exposed to space, asking questions of an
engineering officer and recording responses on his padd. Tobin glanced at the
display and saw that they, once again, were schematics of the Heisenberg. “What
are you working on?” he asked.
Skon
tapped the SAVE key. “A paper I intend to deliver to the
Cochrane Institute when we arrive at Alpha Centauri,” Skon replied. “A proposal
to create modular, detachable hulls for spacecraft. Our experience has
convinced me such a feature would be most advantageous.”
Tobin
smiled wanly and said, “I want a co-author credit.”
“Of
course,” Skon said. “And how are you, Tobin?”
Tobin
pondered the question. “I’m ...” he started. “I feel ...” but found he could
not easily complete the sentence, so he settled himself slowly into an empty
chair. He reached into his pocket, pulled out his cards, and, running through
sleights, told Skon everything that happened after they had separated. “When I
rematerialized in the lab and saw that disruptor in front of me,” he admitted,
“I almost, well, I was ready to surrender.”
“But
you did not,” Skon said.
Tobin
shook his head, though whether in agreement or in denial he couldn’t say. “No,”
he said. “I didn’t. But only because it finally registered that the only thing
in front of me was the hand and the disruptor. The rest of the guard was ... he
was beamed inside the bulkhead.” He ran through another sleight, very
skillfully burying the ace of hearts, then cutting the cards and pulling it out
again.
The
engineering officer smiled as he watched Tobin work the deck. “I told the
others that we have to build in more safeguards to make sure that never happens
again,” Tobin said quietly.
Skon
only nodded.
The
engineer, trying to lighten the mood, said, “But at least we have a deck of
cards to pass the time until we get home.”
Tobin
fanned the deck, then flipped it so that he could look at the faces. “No,” he
said. “Not this deck. I’m four cards short: two aces and two eights. The
Romulan was still holding them when he transported.” Tobin folded the fan, and
said, “I finally got the trick right.” Then, he slipped the deck back into his
pocket, knowing it would be a while before he took it out again.
“She’s
got a worm in her belly? That’s disgusting.”
—Darlene Kursky
“Far Beyond the Stars”
Michael Jan Friedman, The New York Times bestselling
author, has written or co-written more than fifty science fiction, fantasy, and
young adult novels, a great many of them in the Star Trek universe. More
than five million of his books are in print in the United States alone.
Friedman became a freelance writer in 1985, following the publication of his
first novel, The Hammer and The Horn. Since then, he has written for
television, radio, magazines, and comic books. His television credits include
“Resistance,” a first-season episode of Star Trek: Voyager.
A native New Yorker, he lives with his wife and
two sons on Long Island, where he spends his free time (what little there is of
it) sailing, jogging, and playing rotisserie baseball.
Michael Jan
Friedman
I’LL
NEVER FORGET this summer, Leonard McCoy mused, as he lengthened his
stride to keep up with his companion. Not if I live to be a thousand.
After
all, McCoy was a small-town boy a few months shy of his eighteenth birthday.
The venerable old campus of Ole Miss, with its magnolia-shaded walks and its
ancient brick buildings, was like a dream to him. And some of the students who
populated it ... they were even more of a dream.
It
wasn’t as if McCoy had never heard of aliens, or never seen them on newsnets.
They had maintained a continuous presence on Earth since the founding of the
Federation nearly eighty-five years earlier.
However,
they tended to stick to places like San Francisco and Paris, Tokyo and New
York. As a result, McCoy had never met an alien face-to-face ... much less
imagined that he would someday share a dorm room with one.
“You
know,” he told his companion, “you could slow down. The competition’s
not supposed to start for another half hour.”
Sinnit
Arvid turned to peer at McCoy with red eyes that seemed to burn under the
bronze ridge of his brow. Sinnit, a Tessma from Tessmata IV, was half a head
taller than the human. With his chiseled musculature, he looked as if he had
been carved from a generous hunk of rock.
“As I
told you before,” said Sinnit, his voice deep and resonant with resolve, “I
must arrive early. I intend to emerge victorious in this gymnastics
competition, just as I have emerged victorious in every other competition I
have entered ... just as I will emerge victorious in every future competition
I enter.”
McCoy
chuckled at his roommate’s typically Tessman lack of humility. “How could I
forget? You’ve only told me the same thing twelve or thirteen times in the last
two weeks.”
“It is
important,” the Tessma insisted, his tone waxing grim. “Only by demonstrating
mastery of every aspect of my education can I ensure myself an officer’s berth
on a Tessman cruiser.”
It was
the gymnastics meet that had initially attracted Sinnit to Ole Miss. However,
his desire to become proficient at quantum mechanics and theoretical physics
had led to his signing up for a summer course here.
McCoy
was taking a summer course, too. But that, the human mused, was where the
resemblance between them ended.
As a
member of a prominent Tessman family, Sinnit was expected to serve in his planet’s defense forces from his
twenty-second birthday on. Hence, the curved, razor-sharp honor blade that hung
on the wall over his bed, a token of his dedication and commitment to that
career path.
Only
Sinnit’s rank and posting were still undetermined. They would be handed down in
accordance with his academic performance—and to the Tessma, that included one’s
athletic accomplishments.
Sinnit
desperately wanted to bring honor to his family by securing a high-ranking
position. So when he said that it was important for him to win this
competition, he was serious. Dead serious.
McCoy,
by contrast, had no idea what he wanted to do with his life. His father was a
doctor, but the elder McCoy’s work had never held any real appeal for his son.
The teenager imagined that he would find his calling someday, but he didn’t
expect it to happen anytime soon.
“Here
we are,” said Sinnit.
The
Menlo T. Hodgkiss Memorial Gymnasium loomed ahead of them. It was a relatively
new building with sand-colored walls and large, red-tinted windows that
presided over an expansive green lawn—a fitting venue for an interplanetary
athletic event.
Three
other gymnasts, all of them humans, were approaching the building at the same
time. McCoy could tell who they were by the skintight blue outfits they wore.
As they caught sight of the Tessma, who had to be one of the favorites in the
competition, they nodded to him.
But
they didn’t say anything—even though at least some of them must have competed
against Sinnit before. It was as if they were too focused to utter
pleasantries. McCoy glanced at his roommate’s face and saw that he had taken on
a more focused look as well.
Respecting
it, the human was silent as he followed Sinnit into the cavernous, echoing gym,
which had been specially outfitted for the competition. On one side of the room
stood a set of titanium parallel bars. On the other side, there was a
synthetic-leather vaulting horse. And in the middle of the place, a shiny set
of rings dangled from cables embedded in the ceiling.
Some of
the assembled gymnasts were already using the various apparatuses to warm up.
One was a Vobilite, judging by his mottled red flesh and his protruding jaw
tusks. Another was a bowlegged female whose zebra-like stripes marked her as a
Dedderac. There was also an Arkarian, a Mikulak and a huge, blue-skinned
Pandrilite.
McCoy
couldn’t help smiling. He had never seen so many aliens in one place. It was
fascinating, to say the least.
“You
see?” said Sinnit. “And you told me I did not need to hurry. You should attend
more of these competitions, Leonard.”
The
human shrugged. “I stand corrected.”
The
Tessma scanned the gym calmly and methodically, no doubt taking stock of what
he was up against. Suddenly, his crimson eyes went wide.
“Wikhov’na.”
he muttered, his mouth
twisting disdainfully around the word. “Wikhov’na paritisha.”
McCoy,
who had never heard Sinnit use those terms before, looked at his friend. “I
didn’t catch that.”
Sinnit
used a long, bronze finger to point to the opposite end of the gym. “There,” he
said, with what sounded strangely like disgust. “At the judges’ table. It’s a Trill.”
At
first, McCoy didn’t know which of the judges his roommate was talking about. He
recognized one of the males as a Vulcan and another as an Andorian, but the two
women—a petite, lean-muscled blonde and a statuesque brunette—looked perfectly
human as they stood with their backs to him.
Then
they turned around.
Immediately,
McCoy saw which one the Trill was. The spots that framed the sides of her face,
inside her cascade of yellow curls, were a dead giveaway.
And it
wasn’t just any Trill, he realized with surprise and delight. It was the famous
Emony Dax, three-time latinum medalist in the ’24 Olympics on Aldebaran. McCoy
hadn’t even been born when she competed in those games, but his mother had been
lucky enough to see them in person, and she still treasured the holos of Dax’s
upset victory over the favored Argelian athlete. Seeing her now, twenty-one
years later, it was clear to McCoy that the holos hadn’t done her justice. She
was beautiful.
“Leonard?”
someone said in a deep voice.
It took
McCoy a moment to realize that Sinnit was speaking to him. “Hmm?” was all the
response he could muster.
“What is
the matter with you?” his friend asked, a note of impatience in his voice.
With an
effort, McCoy tore his eyes away from Dax. “Nothing. Nothing at all,” he
managed.
Sinnit
glowered at the Trill again. “Just my luck that she would be here—and as a
judge, no less.”
“You
have a problem with her?” McCoy asked. If there was something wrong with Dax,
it sure wasn’t obvious at a glance.
“Yes, I
have a problem,” his roommate snapped.
Sinnit
was usually as even-tempered as they came. But clearly, Dax’s presence here had
thrown him for a loop.
“Want
to tell me about it?” McCoy asked.
But the
Tessma didn’t seem inclined to say anything more. Instead, he moved off
purposefully in the direction of the parallel bars.
McCoy
gathered that Sinnit preferred to concentrate on his routine rather than
whatever it was about the Trill that bothered him, which seemed like the
sensible thing to the young human.
Left to
his own devices, McCoy headed for the silvery metal bleachers that had been set
up along one of the gym’s long walls. They were only about half full of
spectators—mostly humans, but a few Arkarians and a Dopterian as well. Not by
accident, McCoy selected a seat near the judges’ table.
He
tried not to stare at Dax, but he couldn’t help it. The Trill was far and away
the most attractive and beautifully sculpted woman the human had ever seen—a
work of art so fully and perfectly rendered that, to his teenaged eyes, she
hardly seemed real.
He had
barely completed that uncharacteristically poetic thought when the Trill surprised
him. Suddenly, as if she had been aware of his scrutiny all along, she turned
and looked directly at him.
McCoy
felt like the proverbial deer caught in the headlights. Dax’s eyes were frank
and unswerving, transfixing him, paralyzing him.
Finally,
he managed to look away—but the damage had been done. The human cursed himself.
He had been inexcusably rude. As if to underline his guilt in the matter, he
felt his cheeks flush with embarrassment.
McCoy
counted to twenty before he allowed himself to look the Trill’s way again. By
then, he was sure, she would have turned away and—if there was any god at all
in the universe—gone about her business.
But to
his horror, he saw that she hadn’t turned away. She was still gazing at him,
still dissecting him. McCoy swallowed, not knowing what to do ... but
desperately eager to do something.
So he
did the only thing he could do. He ventured a smile. With any luck at
all, he told himself, Dax would recognize it as a heartfelt and embarrassed
apology and see fit to end his torment.
But she
didn’t do what he had hoped she would do. To his amazement, she did something
infinitely better. She smiled back at him.
McCoy
felt like a frog in a fairy tale, basking in the glow of something wildly
undeserved. What’s more, he wished he could bask in the glow of that smile
forever.
But
after a moment or two, Dax noticed the approach of one of the gymnasts and
turned away after all—and in the
process, left McCoy feeling hugely deflated. He expelled a breath, trying hard
to remember when he had ever felt so thoroughly and completely enchanted.
Lord, he thought. Sinnit’s right.
I’ve got to attend a few more of these gymnastics competitions.
McCoy
was about to look for his friend, to see how Sinnit was doing, when he noticed
the spots on the neck of the gymnast approaching Dax. Another Trill, he
realized. And judging by the young man’s expression, he wasn’t happy about
something.
The
human couldn’t hear the conversation very well, since it was carried on in
harsh whispers, but he heard enough to get the gist of it. Apparently, the male
Trill didn’t want to compete against “the Tessma”—an objection he seemed to
have lodged at least once before.
“In
that case, you’re free to withdraw,” Dax said in a husky soprano. “But in
accordance with commission guidelines, you’ll be barred from future
competitions for a standard year.”
Obviously,
that wasn’t what the other Trill had hoped to hear. Frowning, he shot a glance
at each of the other three judges, inclined his head out of respect, and
rejoined the other gymnasts.
McCoy
wondered what had gotten under the male Trill’s skin—and whether it had
anything to do with Sinnit’s references to Dax. Was there a hostility between
the Tessma’s people and Dax’s that he wasn’t aware of?
Before
he could give the question much thought, the judges declared the competition
officially open. The Vulcan judge reminded the gymnasts of some rules that
seemed to vary from venue to venue. Then the human judge outlined the structure
of the meet for the benefit of the crowd.
There
would be three rounds, she said. The athletes with the four top point totals
after the first two rounds would advance to the finals. The rest would be free
to engage in a consolation round if they so chose.
When
the judges were done speaking, the athletes retreated to chairs in a far corner
of the gym, where they sat and waited their turns. A couple of them underwent
last-minute medical scans at the hands of their personal physicians; the Trill
was one of them.
Sinnit
looked tense to McCoy, his brow furrowed as he watched a green-skinned Orion
female lead off the rings event. But the human had seen that expression on his
friend’s face before. It only meant that Sinnit was focused on the task at
hand.
At
least, that’s how it seemed to him.
Fifteen
gymnasts had entered the competition. Sinnit was slated to go fifth, after a
gray-maned Arkarian, a dark, leathery-skinned Mikulak, and a couple of humans.
Of the
first four competitors, the Mikulak seemed the most skilled. But when the
Tessma’s turn came, he blew them all away. Sinnit’s moves were powerful yet
controlled, graceful yet economical. The only mistake he made was in the
vaulting horse event, when he lost his balance a little in landing and had to
hop half a step sideways.
The
next two gymnasts, the Dedderac and a Rigelian, both scored high—but not as
high as Sinnit. The Pandrilite
displayed great strength, but he wasn’t as smooth as his predecessors, and the
human that followed made a major slip on the parallel bars.
With
more than half the field accounted for, McCoy expected his roommate to be
reasonably pleased. But he wasn’t. Sinnit kept glaring at Dax, as if her very
presence there offended him.
The
next entry was a Dopterian, who turned in an error-free performance but didn’t
take any real chances. After him came another human and the Vobilite, neither
of whom were very inspiring.
The
Trill gymnast went thirteenth. He started out conservatively on the rings, but
stepped up the drama on the parallel bars and then stepped it up again on the
vaulting horse, ending with a perfect landing.
Impressive,
McCoy thought. But to his
mind, not as impressive as what Sinnit had accomplished.
The
next two competitors, a female Bolian and a broad-shouldered Arbazan, were
competent but not much more. It seemed certain that the Tessma had won the
first round.
But
when the judges’ scores went up in green characters on the black screen behind
them, Sinnit was in second place with a score of thirty-six—just ahead of the
Rigelian, the Dedderac, and the Dopterian. The Trill gymnast, with a score of
thirty-eight, had placed first.
It
didn’t seem right to McCoy, though he conceded that his perceptions might have
been colored by his loyalty to his friend. If Sinnit’s expression was any
indication, it didn’t seem right to him either.
The
Tessma went over and let the judges know it—for all the good it did. They recorded his protest, but refused to
change his score.
McCoy
had never seen his roommate so angry. As the second round began, Sinnit seemed
unable to cool down. He stalked the sideline like a hungry predator, glowering
at the judges—and Dax in particular.
The
Arkarian went first again, but this time she was brilliant—as good as anyone
else that day. If she had scored higher in the first round, she would have been
certain to advance to the finals.
By
contrast, the Mikulak and the two humans who followed him were lackluster, even
more so than in their earlier performances. But McCoy didn’t imagine Sinnit
would be thinking about them as he walked up to the rings in the center of the
gym. If the Tessma was concerned with any of his rivals, it would be the male
Trill who stood ahead of him in the standings.
Come
on, McCoy thought, cheering
his roommate on. You can do it. He was so intent on Sinnit, he almost
forgot all about Dax.
The
Tessma didn’t disappoint him, either. He pulled out all the stops on the rings,
drawing gasps from the crowd. He was even better on the parallel bars. And on
the vaulting horse, his flip was so high and so intricate that it seemed he
might never come down.
But as
before, there was a flaw in Sinnit’s routine—and this time, it was a bigger
one. In his effort to dazzle the judges and the crowd, he over rotated and
lurched forward as he came down from his vault.
Even
that might not have been such a tragedy in itself. However, the stumble seemed
to rattle the Tessma, to anger
him—to the point where he snarled a curse and gave up on his landing
altogether.
Stalking
off, he cast a baleful look at the judges again. Then he found a chair, sat
down and threw a towel over his head.
McCoy
heaved a sigh. He didn’t know how Dax and the others would score Sinnit’s
omission, but he had a feeling that the Tessma’s victory string wasn’t going to
remain unbroken.
As it
turned out, he was right. When the second round was over and the scores were
announced, the Trill was still in first place. The Rigelian had come in second,
the Dopterian third and the Dedderac fourth.
Sinnit,
in fifth, had failed to qualify for the finals.
The
Tessma was furious, his bronze visage two shades darker than usual, his gaze as
sharp as the honor blade on his wall. But he didn’t go over to the judges’
table to contest his score this time. He just flung his towel away and left the
gym.
McCoy
started to go after him, intending to console his friend as best he could. But
before he could make his way across the gym, he found Dax standing in his way.
Mesmerized
by her deep blue eyes, he wondered what he should say, wondered if he had it in
him to say anything. Then the Trill saved him the trouble.
“I was
just wondering what you found so interesting,” she remarked—not in an
accusatory way, but with a certain playfulness. “I think you spent more time
looking at me than at the gymnasts.”
McCoy
couldn’t deny it. But then, who wouldn’t have spent every available moment looking at her?
“I ...
er ... didn’t mean to offend you,” he replied at last.
Dax
studied him for a moment, then shrugged. “It’s all right. I’ve been offended by
experts.” She held out her hand. “Emony Dax.”
McCoy
smiled—a bit awkwardly, he feared. “Leonard McCoy.”
The
Trill smiled back at him—and it wasn’t at all awkward. In fact, nothing about
her was awkward. “Pleased to meet you, Leonard McCoy.”
For a
moment, there was silence between them—a silence as big as the gym itself.
Feeling he should do something about it, McCoy asked, “So ... have you had a
chance to see much of Earth?”
Dax’s
expression turned suspicious. “Are you asking me out?” she said with a hint of
incredulity.
McCoy
felt the heat of embarrassment crawl into his face again. He was about to
assure the Trill that he wasn’t asking her out at all, that he wouldn’t have
presumed to think someone like her would ever consider such a proposal ... when
Dax spoke up first.
“Because
if you are,” she continued, “you’d better get to the point.” And this time,
when she smiled at him, it was clear that she wanted him to ask her out.
In fact, it seemed to McCoy, she had had that in mind from the moment she came
over to him.
He
spoke with a mouth that had gone terribly dry. “Er ... dinner?”
“Dinner
would be splendid,” Dax assured him. “Time?”
“I’ll
be by to pick you up at seven,” McCoy told her, his mind racing to think of
a place where he could take her—a place she might actually like. “I mean, if
that’s all right.”
“Sounds
fine,” the Trill replied.
“Well,
I guess I’ll see you then.”
“I
don’t think so,” said Dax.
McCoy’s
hopes fell “What ... ?”
“Unless
you find out where I’m staying,” she added.
He was
washed with a wave of relief. “Oh, right. So ... ?”
“The
University Mews,” Dax told him. “Number sixteen.”
McCoy
knew the place. “Great.”
Dax
smiled again, melting him at the knees. “You’ll have to excuse me. I’ve got
some results to report to the Gymnastics Commission.”
“Of
course,” said McCoy.
And he
watched her walk out of the gym.
When
McCoy arrived in his dorm room, Sinnit was sitting on the edge of his bed,
still wearing his blue gymnastics garb. The Tessma didn’t look up as the human
came in.
Hoo,
boy, McCoy thought. But what
he said was, “Come on. Things can’t be all that bad.”
Sinnit
shot him a look. “Could they be worse? I didn’t win the meet. I didn’t even
qualify for the finals.” His hands clenched into white-knuckled fists. “That
filthy Trill. How dare she sit in judgment of me?”
“Filthy?”
McCoy echoed. “I guess that problem you have with her is a little bigger than I
thought.”
The
Tessma sneered. “The Trill are a loathsome species. Wikhov’na pan’tisha, just
as I said.”
“What
does that mean?” the human asked.
Sinnit’s
mouth twisted. “It means they’re disgusting.”
“In
what way?” McCoy prodded.
“In
every way,” the Tessma snarled.
“You
haven’t told me anything,” the human complained.
“I’ve
told you enough,” Sinnit snapped. “And if you’re my friend, you’ll take my word
for it.”
McCoy
stared at him. “I may be your friend,” he replied evenly, “but I’m not a bigot.
And until now, I didn’t know you were one either.”
Leaving
that accusation hanging in the air, he made his way out of the room.
Emony
Dax heard the sound of chimes.
Crossing
the tastefully decorated ground-floor apartment where the university had put
her up, she opened the door. The gymnast had expected to find Leonard McCoy
waiting for her outside on the stone steps. Instead, she found Kejjis Nar, her
fellow Trill.
“I need
to talk with you,” he said, brushing aside an unruly lock of dark hair.
“This
is a bad idea, Kejjis,” Dax told him. “You’re a gymnast, I’m a judge. It’s
improper for us to meet outside the gym while the competition is still going
on.”
Though
Nar looked younger than she did, he had lived more lifetimes. He should have
known better.
“I
don’t care,” he insisted. “What I have to say is important.”
She
folded her arms across her chest. “All right, then. Say it.”
“It’s
useless to try to build relationships with Sinnit’s people. They’ll never
change, no matter how many competitions we attend.”
“I
disagree,” Dax said.
Nar was
incredulous. “Didn’t you see the way Sinnit glared at you after the scores were
announced? Didn’t you hear the words he used? To him, Trills will never be
anything but wikhov’na pan’tisha.”
“I’m a
bit more optimistic,” she maintained. “I think we can still make headway. It’ll
just take a bit more work than we—”
Suddenly,
the Trill heard someone clear his throat. Whirling, she saw McCoy standing
there at the foot of the steps.
“Sorry,”
he said. “I didn’t mean to interrupt anything.”
But
clearly, that wasn’t true. The human had meant to interrupt. He had
sensed that she was having a conversation she didn’t want to have and he had
politely done what he could to end it.
It was
a chivalrous notion—one that made Dax smile. She had been right about Leonard
McCoy, it seemed.
“I
ought to be going,” said Nar, looking a little self-conscious.
Dax
nodded. “See you tomorrow.”
Nar
jammed his hands into his pockets and walked away, leaving McCoy standing there. The human turned to the Trill. “Is
everything okay?” he asked.
Dax
sighed, reluctant to get McCoy mixed up in Nar’s contentions. “I suppose that
depends on whom you ask,” she replied cryptically.
He
shrugged helplessly. “Am I supposed to understand what that means?”
Dax couldn’t
help chuckling a bit. “No,” she assured him. “It means I can’t wait to have a
nice, quiet evening with you.”
McCoy
looked relieved. “Same here.”
Charmed
by his innocent good looks, Dax let the door slide shut behind her and
descended the stone steps. Then she took the young man’s arm and allowed him to
see her to his vehicle.
McCoy
had been nervous about choosing a restaurant, since he didn’t know what kind of
food Trills liked or didn’t like. In the end, he had decided on a little French
bistro—the only French restaurant in all of Oxford, Mississippi.
It
turned out to be a terrific choice. Dax ordered the escargot appetizer and
sautéed sweetbreads for a main course and loved them both. McCoy himself was a
lit-de less adventurous, opting for vichyssoise and veal in a buttery herb
sauce, but he was happy too.
The
wine was a Chateau Picard ’28—a good year, according to their waiter. Dax had
high praise for that as well. McCoy just knew that the stuff made him
light-headed.
After
dinner, he programmed his car to take them to a secluded spot in the hills that overlooked the town. The vehicle
stopped in the lee of a two hundred-year-old magnolia tree and McCoy came
around to open Dax’s door.
“You’re
quite a gentleman,” she observed.
“I’m
from the South,” he replied. “We’re all gentlemen.”
“All?”
the Trill asked!
“Well,”
he told her, “we were all taught to be gentlemen. I guess a few of us
forget from time to time.”
“What
else were you taught?” Dax wondered aloud.
McCoy
felt a warm breeze caress him. It smelled of tupelo sap. “In my case, to value
learning. My father’s a doctor, you know.”
His
companion looked into his eyes. “And you?”
He
shrugged, remembering a conversation he had had with his parents not so long
ago. “Still a student. I don’t know what I want to be. That bothers my folks a
little—Dad especially.”
The
Trill nodded. “My parents wanted me to be something else, too. But when I won
those medals at Aldebaran, they began to come around to my way of thinking.”
“I’m
not surprised,” said McCoy.
Suddenly,
he felt Dax’s hand slip into his. It felt cold—colder than any hand he had ever
felt.
“Are
you chilled?” he asked, concerned.
“No,”
she said, obviously having heard the question before. “Our hands are just
colder than those of most other species.”
The reference
to other species reminded McCoy that
he hadn’t been quite honest with her. He decided to rectify that problem
immediately.
“Um ...
I think I should tell you something,” he said.
“What’s
that?” she asked.
“Sinnit?”
McCoy said. “The Tessma?”
“Yes?” she
responded.
“He’s
... well, he’s my roommate.”
Dax
looked at him. “You’re kidding.”
He
sighed. “I know. I probably should have said something earlier.”
The
Trill thought about it for a moment. Then she shrugged. “It doesn’t matter. You
wouldn’t be here if you thought the way he does.”
“To
tell you the truth,” McCoy said, “I don’t understand the friction between you
and him.”
Dax
shook her head. “It’s not just Sinnit and me. It’s our respective species. They
don’t seem to get along very well. In fact, a lot of species don’t get along.
That’s one of the reasons we set up these competitions—to help people
understand each other. To help them find some common ground that they can build
on.” She smiled ruefully. “Unfortunately, we’re finding that there’s a gap between
theory and practice.”
McCoy
was fascinated by interspecies relations. He said so.
“I’d
find it fascinating too,” the Trill told him wistfully, “if I didn’t have to
listen to Tessma insults quite so often.”
He
recalled the words Sinnit had used to describe her. “What does wikhov’na
pan’tisha mean?” he asked.
Dax’s
face took on a stern demeanor. “It’s a slur,” she explained. “It means ‘vermin
lover.’ ”
McCoy
frowned. “Why that?”
“It’s a
reference to something that happened about ten years ago, when relations
between the Trill and the Tessma were more promising. Some Tessman ambassadors
were out hiking in our Mak’ala wilderness when the ground gave way under them
and they fell into a previously unknown subterranean cavern. The Tessma were
unhurt, but they found their way into a network of underground pools that are
off-limits to non-Trills.”
“Off-limits?”
he echoed.
Dax
nodded. “They’re home to a life-form that’s very important to my people—so
important that the Tessma caused a diplomatic incident just by being there.
Harsh words were exchanged by both sides. And because we Trill were so
protective of a life-form that looked like a worm to the Tessma, some of them
began to refer to us as vermin lovers.”
McCoy
frowned in sympathy. “I thought I knew Sinnit. I guess I didn’t know him at
all.”
“Not
your fault,” Dax told him.
He
wasn’t sure he agreed.
She
must have sensed his discomfort, because she changed the subject. “The stars
are coming out,” she said.
McCoy
looked at the sky. Sure enough, it was getting dark enough to see some of the
constellations. He pointed to one of them.
“See
that group of stars?” he asked the Trill. “It’s made up of the seven principal
stars in Ursa Major. People call it the Big Dipper.”
Dax
considered it. “I can see why.”
“It’s
my favorite of all the constellations,” he confessed.
“Why’s
that?” she asked.
“Some
time ago,” McCoy explained, “before my people came to their senses, there were
slaves in this part of the world. When they escaped, they would sometimes
follow this constellation to freedom.”
“Is
that your field of expertise?” Dax asked. “Astronomy? Or history?”
He
shook his head. “I don’t really have a field of expertise. I guess I know a
little about a lot of things, but not a whole lot about anything in particular.
I’ve got no ... calling, I guess you’d say.”
The
Trill’s hair lifted in the breeze. “My people tend to take career issues rather
seriously. But sometimes the only way to find what you’re looking for is to
stop looking.”
McCoy
felt closer to Dax than ever. “I can’t,” he said.
“Can’t
what?” she asked.
“Stop
looking,” he told her, gazing into her eyes with a longing he couldn’t contain
anymore.
Dax’s
eyes crinkled at the corners. “Me either,” she admitted.
Suddenly,
he kissed her.
It was
a deep kiss. A passionate kiss. And she returned it with the same kind of
passion. Slowly, she pulled him down to the ground and drew him to her. And
there, under the velvety Mississippi sky, Leonard McCoy and the woman from the
stars made love.
* * *
Dax
brushed the matted hair off McCoy’s forehead with her fingertips and kissed him
gently on the lips. “That was wonderful.”
He
smiled up at her. “It was, wasn’t it?”
“You
know,” she said jestingly, “I think you should become a doctor like your
father.”
McCoy
didn’t understand. “Why do you say that?”
Dax
grinned. “Because you have the hands of a surgeon.”
McCoy
laughed. It pleased him to hear her say so. “Thanks.”
“Don’t
mention it,” she told him.
They
gazed at each other a little while longer. Then McCoy said, “Tell me
something.”
“All
right,” the Trill agreed.
“Why
did you want to go out with me? I mean, someone as beautiful as you are ... you
could have your choice of anybody.”
Dax
laughed softly. “You don’t give yourself enough credit, Leonard. You’re a very
attractive young man.”
He blushed
at the remark.
“More
importantly,” she added, “you’re honest. I noticed it in your eyes the first
time I saw you. That’s why you had to tell me about Sinnit—because you can’t
stand the idea of deceiving anybody. And a lot of the people I meet ... let’s
just say they’re not as open as you are.”
McCoy
grunted. “I like you for the same reason. You don’t hide anything. You don’t
play games with people.”
Dax
felt guilty. After all, she had kept something from him. She was living by rules that demanded
she keep silent about her people’s relationship to the symbionts.
But
McCoy was a different story, she mused. She felt she could trust him with
anything—even the secret of what she held inside her.
“Actually,”
Dax said, “there is something I haven’t mentioned to you yet.”
“Oh?”
he responded, obviously curious.
She
nodded. “Remember those life-forms I told you about? The ones who lived in
those underground pools?”
“Sure,”
said McCoy. “But—”
Dax put
her finger over his lips. “There’s a reason those life-forms are so important
to us.”
And she
told him. She shared with him the secret that very few non-Trills had been
trusted with—that those wormlike life-forms were very long-lived, and sentient.
That some Trills were able to take those life-forms into their bodies and
become joined beings.
McCoy
looked intrigued. “Wow. Have you ever spoken to one—a Trill who’s been joined,
I mean?”
Dax
smiled. “Leonard, I am one.”
His
brow puckered as his eyes were drawn to her flat, muscular belly. “You have a
... another life form inside you?”
“Technically,”
said the Trill, “it’s the symbiont whose name is Dax. My birth name was Emony
Odaren.”
McCoy
blanched. “That’s amazing,” he muttered. “But if the symbiont lives for
centuries ... does that you mean you do too?”
She
shook her head. “I live a lifespan comparable to a human’s. When I die, the symbiont takes another host.”
“So are
you its first host?” he asked, grappling with the concept. “Or were there
others before you?”
“There
were two,” Dax told him. “One was Lela Dax. She was a great lady, a member of
the Trill governing council. The second was Tobin Dax.” She smiled to herself,
remembering. “Tobin was great too. He was a scientist, a—”
Suddenly,
McCoy sat up, his eyes as wide as the rising moon. “He?” he sputtered.
“You were a—”
“A
man?” she said, finishing the question for him. “I guess you could say that. I
mean, Dax spent a lifetime in Tobin, and now Dax is in me.”
If the
human had turned pale before, now he was positively white. “I ... I’ve got to
get back,” he told her.
“Back?”
she replied wonderingly. “But—”
“Now,”
he insisted. And before she could answer, he began pulling his clothes back on.
The
Trill’s heart sank. Obviously, she had made a terrible mistake.
When
McCoy woke up in the morning, he couldn’t believe what a solid gold ass he had
been.
The
most beautiful woman he had ever seen had offered him something precious—her
trust. And what did he do with it? He made her feel as if she had committed a
crime just by being who she was.
I’m no better than Sinnit, McCoy told himself.
I’m every bit the bigot he is. I’m incapable of accepting anything
unfamiliar to me.
What
difference did it make that one of Dax’s previous hosts had been a man? The
symbiont was inside Emony now—and if she wasn’t a woman, no one was.
He
shook his head, trying to imagine what she thought of him after he had taken
her home and refused to even walk her to the door. I’m just a kid, McCoy
reflected, a kid who doesn’t deserve someone like Dax. If she didn’t know
that before, she knows it now.
He
groaned out loud, glad that Sinnit had left their room before McCoy woke up. I
have to apologize, he told himself. She may not think any more of me for
it, but I have to try.
Pulling
off his covers, he got dressed. Then he headed across campus to Hodgkiss Gym,
where Dax would be judging the gymnastics finals all that morning.
All the
way there, McCoy tried to frame an apology to the Trill. But nothing he could
think of seemed to work. When he reached his destination, he still had no idea
what words he was going to use—only that he would unconditionally throw himself
at her mercy.
Entering
the gym, he saw that the crowd hadn’t diminished appreciably from its numbers
the day before. Making his way across the floor, he took the same seat and
looked to the judges’ table.
Dax was
discussing something with the Vulcan judge. She looked up now and then to
glance at the four finalists, but she didn’t seem to realize that McCoy was in
the building.
He
didn’t mind in the least. What he had to say would best be said after the competition
was over.
Just as
McCoy thought that, he heard a commotion at the far end of the bleachers,
closer to the door. People began leaving their seats, startled looks on their
faces.
At
first, he couldn’t see what was driving them. Then he got an unobstructed view
and he understood. It was Sinnit—and he had something in his hand. It took
McCoy half a heartbeat to realize what it was.
The
Tessma honor blade. The one
that had hung on their wall.
It
didn’t make sense, he told himself. What was Sinnit trying to do with the
ritual weapon anyway? Disrupt the rest of the competition? Show everyone just
how angry he was?
Then
McCoy saw the twisted expression on his roommate’s face and he began to
understand the Tessma’s true intent. Sinnit wasn’t just trying to scare them.
He really meant to use the razor-sharp weapon on someone.
And
judging from the angle of his path through the crowd, the one he meant to use
it on was Dax!
But the
Trill’s view of Sinnit was blocked by the surging throng. Everything was
happening so fast, she had no idea what was causing the disturbance, much less
that she was in danger.
I’ve
got to do something, McCoy
thought. I’ve got to stop Sinnit. He was moving even before he completed
the thought, slicing sideways through the mass of spectators, heading for Dax
in the hope that he could reach her before his roommate did.
But
before McCoy could get even halfway there, he saw that he would be too late.
Sinnit was making better
progress than he was, thanks to the eagerness of people to get out of his way.
“Emony!”
McCoy shouted at the top of his lungs, his heart banging with fear for the
Trill. “Emony, watch out!”
She
turned at the sound of her name, her expression one of surprise and
trepidation. But it seemed she was still unaware of Sinnit and the danger he
represented.
“Behind
you!” McCoy bellowed in desperation.
As he
got closer to the Trill, Sinnit raised the honor blade above his head. At the
last moment, Dax seemed to understand what McCoy was saying. She began to turn
to face her attacker. ...
But by
then, it was too late. The Tessma was big, strong, every bit as quick and agile
as Dax was. There was no way she could stop him.
Sinnit’s
blade came down in a short, devastating chop. McCoy watched in horror,
expecting the weapon to embed itself in the flesh of Dax’s chest. But to his
surprise, a blue-clad body flashed in front of her and took the brunt of the
Tessma’s attack.
Everything
seemed to stop for a moment, as if time had frozen solid. And in that strange,
static moment, McCoy saw that it was Nar who had absorbed the force of Sinnit’s
blow.
Suddenly,
everyone began to move again. The Vulcan judge leaped over the table in front
of him and wrestled the Tessma to the floor, his powerful fingers closing on
the hand that still held the honor blade. At the same time, Dax grabbed Nar and
lowered him to the floor, gently placing his head in her lap.
There
were screams of terror and deep-throated accusations as McCoy made his way to
Dax’s side, feeling numb and disbelieving. He could see even before he got
there that Nar had been wounded badly. His midsection was dark and wet with
blood, and the stain was spreading before the human’s eyes.
McCoy
had seen his father treat wounds, though none of them had ever been as bad as
this one, and he didn’t have any medical training of his own.
Dax
glanced at him. “Help me,” she said, her eyes imploring him, her voice barely
audible above the shouts of the crowd. And she looked down at her hand, Nar’s
blood seeping between her fingers.
Abruptly,
McCoy realized there might be more than one life at stake—there might be two.
And if that was true, it was still a secret the Trills wanted kept to
themselves.
McCoy
turned to the crowd and shouted, “Stand back!” with a tone of authority he
didn’t know he had.
Staring
at him, the crowd did as he asked. But one of them, at least, would have to do
more than that.
McCoy
pointed to a middle-aged man, the father of one of the human gymnasts. “You!”
he snapped. “Get the Trill doctor! No one else!”
The man
nodded, then turned and scanned the crowd.
Satisfied
that help was on the way, McCoy knelt beside Dax again. But as he caught
another glimpse of Nar’s face, which had already gone deathly pale, the human
began to wonder if that help would be in time.
“Never
a physician around when you need one,” Dax rasped. “Stay with me, Kejjis. We’ll
get you through this, I promise.”
The
muscles in her jaw rippling, she pulled up Nar’s tunic to reveal his wound. All
McCoy could see was a mess of dark blood that made his stomach churn. If Dax
was put off by the sight, she didn’t show it. In fact, she inserted her fingers
into the wound and felt around inside.
Nar
writhed and bleated in gut-wrenching agony, but he didn’t have the strength to
stop her. All he could do was clutch ineffectually at Dax’s wrists as she
continued her ministrations.
Finally,
Dax looked up at McCoy. “The blade cut an artery,” she said. “I need you to
hold it.”
The
human felt the blood rush out of his face. “But I—”
Before
he could complete his protest, Dax guided his fingers into the wound and
pressed them closed around something soft and slippery. Clenching his jaw, he
forced himself to maintain the pressure.
Then,
just when McCoy thought he could cope with what he was being asked to do, he
felt something slither around his knuckles. Not just once, but over and
over again.
It
seemed to McCoy that he held Nar’s artery in his fingers for an impossibly long
time. Then, to his relief, he saw the crowd of onlookers make way for the Trill
doctor, who knelt beside Dax and pulled out a Trill version of a medical
tricorder.
The
physician had an angry cut across his forehead. Apparently, he had been injured in the rush of the crowd.
“Bad,”
he said of his patient. “But not fatal, if we take care of it quickly.”
McCoy
wondered if the doctor was talking about Kejjis or the symbiont. Both, he
hoped fervently.
Working
quickly, the physician removed several other instruments from his shoulder bag.
The human had seen his father use some of them, but others seemed to be
strictly designed for Trill anatomy. One of them must have contained
anesthesia, because Nar began to relax, his cries of pain turning into
plaintive whimpers.
Before
long, the doctor was just as bloody as Dax and McCoy. But it didn’t seem to
bother him. He remained focused on his work, his eyes hard and intent. Finally,
after several tense minutes, he leaned back on his haunches and exhaled with
heartfelt relief.
“You’re
going to be all right,” he told Nar.
The
wounded gymnast was still deathly pale, but he managed a smile. “Thank you,” he
said softly.
McCoy
knew that Nar wasn’t speaking only for himself.
“You’re
welcome,” the doctor told him.
Something
about the exchange moved McCoy in a way that he had never been moved before.
The ability to help, to heal ... he had never appreciated the magnitude of it.
But he did now.
“Wikhov’na!”
came a snarl.
McCoy
turned and saw Sinnit standing there, his muscular arms still in the grip of
the Vulcan judge. The Tessma’s face was dark with anger, his ruby-red eyes
smoldering with hate.
“Wikhov’na
pan’tisha!” Sinnit barked.
“No!”
McCoy heard someone yell.
It took
him a moment to realize that the someone had been him.
Swept
up by his fury like a piece of flotsam on a crashing wave, McCoy felt an urge
to plant his fist in his roommate’s face. He even took a couple of steps toward
Sinnit with that in mind. But in the end, he convinced himself that there had
been enough violence there that day.
“Are
you proud of yourself?” McCoy spat at the Tessma. He held up his bloody hands.
“Are you proud of this?”
Sinnit’s
eyes blazed, but he didn’t answer his friend’s questions. He just turned away.
“I hope
you are,” McCoy said in a more subdued voice, overcome by a sudden and
unexpected sadness. “Because it’s probably the last thing you’ll ever do on
this Earth.”
The
Tessma didn’t answer. He didn’t say anything even when security finally came
and took him away.
The
dormitory hallway was a mellow orange, illuminated by the golden light of late
afternoon. Dax walked the length of it until she found what appeared to be the
right door.
It was
ajar, but she knocked on it anyway. After a moment, the door swung open the
rest of the way, revealing a surprised McCoy.
“Hi,”
he managed.
“Hi
yourself,” she said.
Clearly,
McCoy was at a loss as to what to say next.
The Trill
helped him out. “Mind if I come in?”
“Of
course not,” he told her. He stepped aside and gestured to the room beyond.
“Make yourself at home.”
Sinnit
wasn’t there, of course. He was in the custody of the Oxford authorities.
Finding a chair, Dax sat down and regarded her human host.
“I just
wanted to see if you were all right,” she told him.
McCoy
nodded. “I think so,” he said, but it was evident that he was still struggling
with the events of the last twenty-four hours. “So I guess the competition’s
pretty much down the tubes.”
“Pretty
much,” Dax agreed. “And that’s too bad. But in a funny way, it served its
purpose.”
McCoy
looked at her. “What do you mean?”
“What
Sinnit did in the gym ... somehow it ended up doing more to bring everyone
together than a month’s worth of competitions. Everyone—humans, Trills,
Vulcans, Rigelians. Tessma—they’re all reaffirming their commitment to the goal
of mutual understanding. Even Kejjis is amazed at the dialogues that have
started.”
McCoy
smiled disbelievingly. “You’re kidding.”
Dax
shook her head. “I’m not.”
The
human’s smile faded. “You know,” he said solemnly, “I have to apologize. For
what happened last night, I mean. I was just—”
She
held up a hand, stopping him. “You don’t have to explain. I’ve had two
lifetimes to get used to other life-forms. I sometimes forget that others
haven’t had the benefit of all that experience.”
He
looked grateful. “I meant to say something earlier. That’s why I came to the
gym. But with all the confusion ... and then you disappeared. ...”
“I had
to file a complaint,” the Trill explained.
McCoy
nodded. “I figured it was something like that.” He paused. “But I didn’t think
you’d let me off the hook so easily. You’re one surprise after another.”
“The
universe is full of surprises,” Dax told him. “As you go on with your
life, you may find that running toward them is more fun than running away.”
She had
expected him to blush at the remark, but he didn’t. “I’m starting to understand
that,” he said.
Silence
reigned between them. But it wasn’t an uncomfortable silence. It was unhurried,
companionable, the silence of two old friends.
Suddenly,
McCoy did something she didn’t expect. He came forward and took her hand.
“You
know,” he said earnestly, “I don’t care what you used to be. I mean, it’s the future
that matters, right? And—” He took a deep breath, then let it out. “I was
hoping we could spend some of it together.”
The
offer caught Dax off guard. How about that? she reflected as she gazed
into McCoy’s wishful young eyes. Even after a couple of lifetimes, I can
still be surprised.
She put
her hand over his, feeling its alien warmth. “Much as I know I’d enjoy spending
more time with you, Leonard, I think our destinies lie in different directions.
Besides,” she added, “you already have an old soul. You don’t need another
one.”
McCoy
was disappointed. That much was clear from the way he looked at her.
Nonetheless, he managed to take Dax’s decision in stride.
“Will I
ever see you again?” he asked softly, poignantly.
The
Trill smiled at him. “I can’t say for sure, of course. But something tells me
that our paths will cross someday.”
The
human swallowed. “I’ll never forget you, y’know.”
“And
I’ll never forget you,” Dax responded, shooting him a sly look to
lighten up the moment.
Then
she kissed him on the cheek and departed.
But she
hadn’t lied, she realized, as she emerged into the bright golden light of the
Mississippi afternoon. She really wouldn’t forget the boy named McCoy,
even if she lived to be a thousand.
“When
one of my kind stumbles, Benjamin ... it’s a mistake that’s there forever.”
—Jadzia Dax
“Dax”
S. D. (Stephani Danelle) Perry writes multimedia
novelizations in the fantasy/science fiction/horror realms for love and money,
occasionally in that order. She’s worked in the universes of Resident Evil,
Aliens, Xena, and most recently, Star Trek; she has also written a
few short stories, and translated a couple of movie scripts into books.
Danelle, as she prefers to be called, lives in Portland with an incredibly
patient husband and their two ridiculous dogs.
S. D. Perry
My Dearest Neema:
In past weeks, I’ve gone over a thousand
different openings to the letter you now hold in your hand, searching for a
phrase or sentiment that would inspire you to read past the first words. Now,
as I write, I know that there is no way for me to do this thing. When you were
a child, no bribe or threat would make you do what you did not choose to do. It
was a dominant trait of my daughter from the very day she was born, and I would
be surprised to learn that you’ve lost your willful streak. Perhaps it’s this
stubbornness I should appeal to, or call upon any lingering sentiment and
demand your attention this final time; in truth, I don’t know. Eight years have
passed since we last spoke, and any presumptions on my part would surely be
false. You are Neema Cyl now, and all I can offer is that this letter is an
important one, and I hope that you will read it.
So. Having implored your attention, I’m now
at a loss for where to begin. Please bear with me as you read, as I write;
there’s a story to be told, and it’s been locked inside of me for so long that
I’m unsure of how to tell it. At one time, I swore to myself that I never
would. I chose ink and paper so that I might find my way through my own
carefully layered defenses, that I might create each letter, each symbol, and
etch the emotion into reality. It sounds foolish, perhaps, but I feel almost as
though it will erase time and distance between us—words from my heart to
yours, your fingers touching what I have touched.
Eight years, and I speak now to a joined
Neema. It’s not much time for a Trill, I know, but I’ve felt every day of our
separation. I’ve heard that you’re a gifted teacher of sciences. Tobin Dax once
heard Deilas Cyl speak at that botanical conference on Halii, the presentation
on light alternatives, and remembers a pleasant, soft-spoken man of
thoughtfulness and gentle wit. How wonderful for you, Neema Cyl. Perhaps we can
someday—
I get ahead of myself. I find ways to avoid
writing, even in the process. No more delays.
Neema. Your father, my beloved husband,
Jayvin Vod, died when you were fourteen, and the true circumstances surrounding
his death are what I mean to address. You already know some of it: Fifteen
years ago, your father and I were involved in a confidential deep space
mission. He was badly injured. The symbiosis between Jayvin and Vod dissolved,
and Jayvin died.
I remember telling you. I remember waking
you, sitting on your rumpled blankets in the early light, remember your pale
young face turned up to mine. The tears that spilled from your dark eyes—your
father’s eyes. I told you then, and let me tell you once more, how much he
loved you and Gran both. You were the suns in his sky, the beat of his heart ...
I’m struck suddenly by a memory, of your
father holding both of you in his arms, in the house we lived in just after
Gran was born. You were all of three when we brought Gran home, and I remember
that Jayvin called you into our room to meet him. We sat on the floor, in a
shaft of sun that came in through the window, and Jayvin encouraged you to
introduce yourself to Gran. You were shy at first, although grinning as your
father pulled you into his lap and held up the newborn for you to see. I felt
whole then in a way I had never felt before, perhaps even in memory. Jayvin
smiled up at me, his dark hair tousled, his face lined with sleeplessness, and
told me that he too, was complete. “I’ve never been this happy,” he said, and
he wept. I weep now, remembering.
I misled you about what happened to your
father. I was deliberately vague with you about the nature of his injuries, and
when you pressed for information, I told you that the Vod symbiont had gone to
a new host. It’s my shame that I manipulated you, that when you became
persistent with your questions, I cloaked myself in sadness so that you would
stop asking. I used my pain to frighten you away from the answers; although I
never told you outright, I made it clear how very terrible it was for me to
relive the event that caused Jayvin’s death. It was, is true, but only a
fraction of truth, a grain in a sea of grain. Even when you were accepted as a
host initiate, when your questions had become pleas, I found a way to elude. To
hide. It’s no solace, I’m sure, for you to know how many nights I spent awake
and alone, so choked with guilt and self-hatred that I could not sleep—but
I don’t mean to try and arouse your sympathies. This letter is for you.
I should have known that your curiosity
would lead you to do what you did. Your stubborn spirit, inherited from both of
your parents—I allowed myself the luxury of delusion, of believing that my
daughter would know better than to seek Vod’s new host. I had been head of the
Trill Symbiosis Commission for over seven years when you were accepted; you had
heard so many stories of reassociation disasters, of lives destroyed by
past-host folly, that I told myself you would never break with Trill custom.
Idiocy. I knew your heart, and pretended that I did not.
So when, seven years after Jayvin’s death,
you used my private access code to look into the TSC files, and discovered the
truth—I can hardly claim I was shocked. What you found out must
have—better just to say it, to tell it the way I believe you saw it. Vod
died with Jayvin on the table, even though the symbiont was physically
uninjured. No action was taken to save its life—so far as I know, an
unprecedented act—and I was instrumental in that decision. Your own
mother, guilty of allowing your father’s symbiont to die. Even as head of the
commission, it took more than just my word—but it was after my rushed
testimony that the few attending doctors and commission members left Vod inside
of Jayvin, left it trapped in his dying body. The case was sealed, the
specifics unrecorded, and I lied to you, I told you that Vod lived.
I told myself that as head of the TSC, it
was my ethical responsibility not to speak of it. I told myself that you had
already suffered enough, that we both had. I knew it would give you comfort to
believe that your father’s memories, that his love for us, still existed as an
empirical reality. Perhaps most persuasive of all, I told myself that Jayvin
would have wanted you to believe he’d died peacefully.
These aren’t excuses, nor do I expect you to
forgive me my reasoning—I want only for you to understand why I
let you believe what you’ve believed for so long. When you confronted me with
what little you’d learned—I’m ashamed to tell you that I was relieved.
You didn’t know everything, you didn’t know why. I told myself that it
was for the best; that it was better for you to despise me than to know the
truth. I’ve restated and rationalized that for the last eight years, and I was
wrong.
The truth isn’t all that came between us.
When you confronted me, the initial terror I felt turned my anger into
something like hysteria. I told you—screamed at you—that I
couldn’t believe my daughter was a thief, and I recall so vividly the fire in
your gaze, the heat there that belied the chill of your voice.
“And I can’t believe my mother is a
murderer,” you said. “A murderer and a liar.”
You walked out—and although we had a
few strained and dismal exchanges afterward, I believe that was the last time
an emotion passed between us. If you accept nothing else from all of this, accept
that I am deeply ashamed of how I acted that day.
Neema, this is so hard! Not for me to
confess my mistakes, although that isn’t such an easy thing, either—but
simply to tell you, even admitting that I’ve been wrong to keep it from you. I
write now because ... there are too many reasons to list, and perhaps you’ll
understand by the end of this growing document. The reasons aren’t even
important; what’s important is that you only know part of the truth, and when
I’ve finished, you’ll know it all.
In the cool autumn of Stardate 1229, I was
forty-one years old and had been head of the Symbiosis Commission for less than
a year. Jayvin and I were close, perhaps closer than we’d ever been, in career
and in marriage; he’d been appointed head of the xenobiology department at the
Kem’alta Institute, and was consulted on all sorts of matters relating to our
exploration missions. I was enjoying my own appointment, putting to work the
political acumen I’d learned as Lela Dax. I was too busy to continue pursuing my
science, but Jayvin kept me updated on medical advancements in Trill biology, a
subject we shared a passion for; we had written and published several papers
together on symbiont chemical anomalies, back when I was still teaching. You
and Gran, our brilliant and beautiful children, were growing so fast. ...
We were happy then, Jayvin and I, blissfully
unaware that things could change, that they aren’t always as they seem. You’d
think that between our ten lifetimes of experience, we would have known better—although
as I’m sure you know, some lessons are harder to learn than others. And some
must be learned again and again.
As now, there was much debate over the
simultaneous evolution of host and symbiont on Trill—there always is,
and I’ve come to believe that there always will be; no culture is so small as
to accept a single possibility, regardless of evidence, regardless of faith.
But I also believe that no intelligent species will ever stop looking for
answers, and the call that came to our government, only eight months after I
accepted the TSC position, was one that no Trill could ignore.
The message we received was from Starfleet,
and was a source of great excitement within the governing council as well as
the TSC. There was a newly discovered comet just outside the Trill system,
headed, in fact, toward Trill. In some thirty years it would pass us, there was
no apparent danger—but upon a routine survey, a Starfleet probe had
brought back information that was of profound interest to us. The probe had
detected a unique bioelectric signature emanating from inside the comet, one
that Starfleet scientists found comparable to that of a tiny percentage of
Trills. They didn’t know that the Trill are a joined species, of course, didn’t
understand what they’d found, but we knew immediately—Starfleet had
detected the biosignature of a symbiont.
I’m sure you can imagine the stir this
caused—what it could mean for us, what we might learn about ourselves.
There was a closed door discussion within the governing council over our
continued interest in keeping our symbiotic nature to ourselves, even some
concern that whatever the comet contained might give us away—but really,
there was never any question that we would send a team. It helped that
Starfleet didn’t seem nearly as interested in the biology of what they’d found
as they were intrigued by the comet itself, in its unusual proportions of mass
and density. Further, their science officers insisted its composition didn’t
match that of the cometary halo surrounding the Trill system; it had come from
somewhere else.
And for our part, all we cared about
was the symbiont reading. I’ve spent countless hours regretting that disregard,
thinking that if we had only investigated more closely, waited before making a
decision ...
If only.
Apart from a few councillors within the
government, there were only a handful of commission members and scientists who
knew of Starfleet’s invitation to join its landing party. It was agreed that
the matter should be kept quiet until more was learned. This meant that our
team would have to be selected from among our own small circle. As head of the
TSC and with no small knowledge of symbiont biochemistry, I was eager to go,
and Jayvin was my logical companion.
Things fell into place quickly. We were to join
the Starfleet team aboard the Tereshkova, a small scientific survey
vessel that would come to Trill and take us to the comet. Jayvin and I hardly
had time to gather the proper equipment before it was time to leave. We were so
excited, digging through the TSC’s labs for fluid test kits and specimen peels,
both of us trying not to get our hopes too high, but hoping anyway, that
whatever was on the comet would be the beginning of a new understanding of and
for Trill. Neither of us voiced our truest wish, although I could see it in
Jayvin’s eyes, as I suspected he could see it in mine—that we would
return to Trill with a symbiont, one not born on our world.
You may recall the day we left, the state of
near jubilation that we were in. I remember telling you and Gran that we’d be
gone for a day or two on TSC business, and then working all afternoon with your
father, packing and repacking our equipment, trying to organize. We left just
after sunset, tired but enthused and before we left, we looked in on you both,
together, watched you sleep for a moment, both of us silent and proud in the
early morning light. Both of us hopeful for the future.
The Tereshkova beamed us aboard on
schedule. We were greeted in the transporter room by the captain and first
officer of the ship, who, after showing us where we could store our equipment,
led us directly to the briefing for the expedition. It was there that we met
the Starfleet officers who would be with us, four human men. There were two
scientists, Doctors Jaurez and Milton, a xenobiologist and an astrophysicist
respectively; a security officer named Jon Chin; and a fleet captain,
Christopher Pike, of Starbase 11. It seemed unusual that such an esteemed
member of Starfleet would be leading a relatively minor scientific expedition,
but it turned out that the comet had been discovered under Captain Pike’s
command, during some kind of cadet training voyage.
Of all of them, Christopher Pike stands out
most clearly in my memory. There was something about him ... He had the
look of authority, silvering hair, rather piercing blue eyes, the
shoulders-back carriage of a man used to command. But it was more than that; a
kind of casual brilliance, I suppose, a flexibility of thought that only rarely
exists in men of his age and position. I had been concerned that we would be
led by some stiff and unimaginative military type, someone who wouldn’t allow
us to do the kind of work we had planned. But after just a few moments of
informal conversation, I decided that I was most pleased that he would be with
us. If something were to go wrong, Womb forbid, Captain Pike would hold
together.
The mission briefing was short and simple:
Get in, collect data, get back out again. The probe had detected traces of
kelbonite, a transporter inhibitor, so we’d be going down by shuttlecraft.
There were a few questions from Doctor Jaurez about the bioreading, which
Jayvin managed to answer without answering; the two hit it off, actually,
spending several hours after the short meeting exchanging thoughts on various
developments in multispecies pharmacology. Looking back, I’m glad that Jayvin’s
last day was spent with a colleague, learning and sharing. It was what he
loved.
I spent some time with our mission leader
while Jayvin talked science with the others. Pike and I had an engaging
conversation about the responsibilities of leadership, and he told me several
interesting stories from his days as a starship commander. When I asked why a
fleet captain had chosen to head the expedition, he said that it kept him young—not
field work, but remembering that he was never too old to learn. At times, I had
to remind myself that I wasn’t talking to a joined Trill; a very thoughtful
man, for so short an experience.
When we reached the comet, it was the middle
of the night for your father and me, but we pressed to begin the investigation
immediately. There were no objections; all six of us were excited for the
unlikely adventure. As we suited up and loaded the shuttle with our various
tools, the exhilaration was a palpable thing. Even Mr. Chin, who would almost
certainly have nothing to do outside of piloting the shuttle, was eager, joking
about ice monsters in the dark mass. We all laughed.
We got our first good look at the comet from
the shuttle, or at least I did; I’d been too busy gathering equipment aboard
the Tereshkova to bother with a visual survey, and although I had read
the stats, I was surprised by the barren immensity of it. Fifty-four kilometers
in diameter, its gaseous tail stretching out over a hundred thousand kilometers
behind it, ice and grit repelled by the system’s sun, a hazy path in the solar
winds. Dr. Milton was intent on the computer reads as Chin took us down to the
surface, the scientist frowning at what he called an “unknown agent” amid the
hydroxyl radicals. At the time, it was just another anomaly to be catalogued.
Starfleet had been unable to pin the source
of the life reading, but we quickly assessed that it was coming from somewhere
deep inside; the comet was riddled with labyrinthine caves, the ice sculpted
into yawning tunnels that twisted randomly throughout the massive body. We had
expected as much; what we hadn’t expected was the faint, phosphorescent
glow that appeared to emanate from the fissures in the comet’s surface, not
visible until we were within a few kilometers of setting down.
Milton mumbled something about clouded ice
formations, but it was obvious that he was as unnerved as the rest of us. There
was nothing beautiful about the erratic glowing lines that scarred the comet,
that crept into the darkness of the gaping caverns; it was a sickly light, the
yellow-green of bruised flesh, the luminosity like that of some deep-sea
creature that lives and dies in darkness. Jayvin and Doctor Jaurez checked
readings, directing our pilot to where the biosignature was strongest,
somewhere beyond the mouth of one of the larger caves.
We set down just outside of the cavern, the
initial excitement of our party considerably muted by the sight of those
unhealthily shining lines. It appeared that the probable life-form was only
three or four kilometers past the opening, and Pike suggested that we could
examine the strangely lit cracks on our way to the source. We loaded up,
activated the Starfleet-issue environmental suits and gravity boots, and left the
relative warmth of the shuttle for the sub-zero dark.
The nearest light-line was twenty meters or
so from the shuttle, running up one side of the cavern’s opening. Each of us
carrying our equipment and the Starfleet party armed with handheld phasers, we moved
to the line and gathered around, leaning in for a closer look. It was perhaps
half a meter wide, and according to Dr. Milton’s tricorder, not much deeper—and
as he adjusted his sensors for composition, Jayvin got a flash of signal on our
plisagraph. An electrical impulse, invisible, had traveled through the glowing
matter. Jayvin handed the ’graph to me, keeping his face carefully neutral as
Milton told us what we already knew; the opaque, luminescent stuff was liquid.
Viscous, the consistency of dense mud and covered with a layer of ice, it was
capable of conducting the electrical language of a symbiont-like being. Their
tricorder hadn’t caught the split second of mild current, but we knew. We knew
that somewhere inside of the comet, some as yet unknown relative of Dax or Vod,
of Cyl—someone was there.
Unable to break down the composition, Milton
took a scraping of the frozen top layer and we moved deeper into the cave, both
Jayvin and I exchanging looks of renewed zeal. We had already discussed how to
handle the possibility of actually finding a symbiont in front of the humans.
Our explanation would be a half-truth, that the symbiont was a primitive
life-form, one with a complex arrangement of RDNAL strands that some Trills had
inherited. Our plisagraphs, designed specifically for the study of symbiont
life, would give us precise readings; their tricorders wouldn’t, or so we
hoped. That Milton hadn’t been
able to pick up the faint pulse in the glowing liquid seemed a good indicator.
I
know that you understand our excitement, the multitude of questions and hopes
and theories that swept through us when we realized what we were facing. Was
some ancient traveler from another world responsible for the beginning of life
on Trill? Were the symbionts even indigenous to the homeworld? What if there
was another homeworld, one that preceded Trill by hundreds, even thousands of
centuries? I remember the bright intensity of Jayvin’s gaze behind his visor,
the smile that he couldn’t seem to wipe away. I remember wondering at the
implications for Trill ... and
thinking that we shouldn’t assume anything, even as I assumed that we would
find a race of beings like our own, a connection between ourselves and the
universe that would bring us into a new era of self-awareness.
The
cavern twisted and turned, always sloping down, randomly branching into
intersections and tunnels that wound through the icy rock. If not for our
various sensory devices, we would have been hopelessly lost. Pike led the way,
Milton and Jaurez giving direction, Jon Chin bringing up the rear, and we
passed many more of the communication lines, shining like dying fires and
casting much of the rough cavern into deep shadow.
We
walked for what seemed like days, each moment dragging. I was so eager to find
the origin of the life sign, to communicate with it, that I could hardly keep
from running. Several times we had to backtrack, led astray by curves and
twists, which only made my anticipation greater. Jayvin felt the same; I could
hear it in his tone, as he relayed distance and signal strength, as he and
Jaurez made small talk about human ancestry. We were impatient and
impassioned, those feelings blocking out anything else we might have intuited
about the situation.
Finally, Pike had us stop just outside of a
rather large chamber lit with the slimy glow of the liquid conductor. We had
reached our destination. A haze of sallow light spilled out into the passage,
and as Pike and Mr. Chin drew their phasers—Pike setting his on stun and
ordering Chin to set his for a higher intensity—Jayvin and I waited
anxiously. I thought we had been discreet, but as Chin stepped ahead of us into
the greenish light, Pike held back, fixing us with a searching gaze as he
touched the communication control just below his helmet. The other two
scientists followed Chin into the chamber, and I saw, with no real surprise,
that Pike had cut his men out of the com-circuit; he meant to speak to us
privately.
“You know what’s in there, don’t you?” he
asked softly, but it wasn’t really a question. “You don’t have to explain, not
now ... but you know. All I need to know is whether or not it’s dangerous.”
Jayvin looked to me to answer, and although
I had our lie on my lips, I found that I couldn’t tell it. I doubt very much
that he would have believed it, anyway, but I did the best I could—I
told him that we knew nothing certain, but that we had hopes, and that we
couldn’t speak any further on it until we had a chance to see for ourselves.
“And no,” Jayvin added, smiling a little,
“it’s not dangerous.”
Pike studied both of us a moment longer,
then nodded slowly, letting the matter drop. I found out later that he blamed
himself in part for the events that followed, because he hadn’t pursued it any
further. It’s almost funny, how we all rush to take responsibility when
something goes wrong, when we feel that we should have acted differently. I’ve
spent a lot of time thinking about that, trying to assign blame to whomever
deserved it most—only to come to the painful realization that sometimes,
things happen that no one can foresee. Things happen because they do.
Together, we went to join the three men who
had already found the source of the biosignature, Jayvin and I fumbling with
our plisagraphs and test kits and cursing our bulky gloves. I suppose I had
expected something like the Mak’ala cave pools, even in the sub-zero
temperature—but other than the fact we were in a cave, nothing was the
same.
The reading came from a raised basin at the
far side of the chamber, filled with the same luminescent sludge that ran
through the comet like lifeblood. Jagged shards of murky ice crusted the sides
and top of the raised vessel, which was only a meter across and hewn from the
same composite rock as the rest of the chamber. Great trails of the sludge
liquid crisscrossed the walls all around, making strange light patterns across
the faces of the men standing in front of the chest-high basin, throwing
shadows against the piles of broken rock on the uneven floor.
Jayvin aimed his ’graph at the pool and
grinned, holding it up for me to see even as Jaurez began to report.
“There’s a life-form of some kind in there
... complex arrangement, carbon-based, it should be frozen, but ... I
can’t get an exact size, it seems to be shifting—” The Starfleet xenobiologist
shook his head. “Between eight and twelve centimeters long ... and according to
this, it’s at least four thousand years old.”
Our readings were more definite—and
it was closer to six thousand. The machine registered complex neural activity,
and picked up more of the soft electrical pulses that we’d noted earlier in the
glimmering organic fluid. It was not a symbiont, it was smaller and the shape
was different, but it was so close at a genetic level that there was no doubt
they were related. No doubt in my mind.
Jayvin was still grinning as he pointed to
the gentle flux of numbers on the ’graph’s monitor; he didn’t need to speak. It
was trying to communicate with us, we knew it, and I knew that nothing would
ever be the same, that I could no longer think of our people as isolated, as
alone. Tragically, I was right.
The Starfleet men put away their weapons and
all of us moved closer to the basin, my heart pounding, my thoughts racing—when
I felt a sudden, sharp pain in my head. It was like the onset of one of Emony’s
headaches, but much more intense—the sensation of a raw knife sliding
into soft tissue, horrible, killing pain—and then it was gone, just as
suddenly. I faltered, putting my hand on Jayvin’s shoulder, speaking his name—but
he shrugged it off and kept walking. I was surprised at Jayvin; it was unlike
him to ignore me.
“Jayvin,” I called, and again, he didn’t
respond. I think that’s when I first knew something was wrong.
Everything happened quickly after that.
The Starfleet scientists were studying their
tricorders. Mr. Chin was looking down into the pool, perhaps trying to catch a
glimpse of the creature beneath the sheet of gleaming ice. Pike took a step
toward me, frowning, perhaps about to ask me if I was all right, but I was
watching Jayvin, suddenly worried. Suddenly afraid.
At once, all of the alarms on his suit began
to go off. A series of shrill bleats poured into my helmet, spurring my fear to
panic. His heart rate, temperature, and blood pressure had all spiked
dangerously high, and they continued to rise as he stepped toward the basin, as
he dropped his equipment and bent down over it.
All of the men were talking at once,
confused, Pike shouting for Jayvin to move away. I took a single step forward,
my own suit’s distress alarm sounding, memories of fear joining my own—
—When something shot out of the pool,
something small and dark, splinters of ice shattering—
—And Jayvin staggered back silently. His
hands flew to his head and he stumbled, ice crystals falling around him like
mist, the terrible, rotting light surrounding him like a wash of poison.
Mr. Chin was closest. He reached out and
Jayvin clutched at him, pulling him off balance. I didn’t understand what was
happening until Jayvin shoved Chin away, still silent, one hand still pressed
to his faceplate—and Chin’s phaser in his other hand.
There was a blast of light and the security
officer screamed, but only once. Jayvin spun, pointing the weapon at the two
scientists as Chin collapsed to the floor, the rush of air from what was left
of his suit expelling in a whoosh—
—And then Pike fired, hitting Jayvin in the
chest—but to no effect. Jayvin was still standing, seemingly unaffected,
and before Pike could change the setting on his phaser, Jayvin was firing at
us. Pike jerked me away, pushing me back to the tunnel as rock exploded
silently in flashes of blue-white. I struggled, screaming for Jayvin to stop as
Pike fought to get me out of the chamber. If he hadn’t, I would have been as
dead as Chin, as Jaurez and Milton. They didn’t even have time to drop their
tricorders before the brilliant strobe of the deadly Starfleet weapon filled
the vacuum, twice more.
I heard Jayvin shout, a single cry of what
might have been terror—and Pike pushed me behind an outcropping of ice,
slapping at the controls on both of our suits to turn off the blaring alarms.
The chamber was clouded with frozen air, a billion reflectors for the diseased
light of the yellow-green ooze.
Jayvin wasn’t Jayvin. It was the creature,
the thing we had thought was a symbiont.
I started talking, fast, unable to keep the
desperation from my voice. I begged and commanded, I swore and reasoned,
telling Jayvin not to let it take hold, not to let it win. I pleaded for Vod to
stop it. I said a lot of things, the words blurring together as Pike continued
to dart glances back into the chamber, trying to shield me as he stabbed at the
emergency call on his suit.
Jayvin didn’t answer; he said nothing at
all, and when I risked a look back into the gangrenous light of the alien’s
womb chamber, I saw him standing and shuddering, a smear of clouded ice across
the bottom of his helmet. He still held the phaser, but seemed unaware of our
presence.
Pike saw our chance, and took it. He
motioned silently for me to stay put and stepped away from the wall. As quickly
as he could, he crept back into the chamber, holding his phaser ready,
obviously meaning to stop Jayvin without killing him. I kept talking, not
knowing what else to do, but I don’t believe that Jayvin heard me. Already, he
was past that.
Pike had almost reached him when the thing
took hold again. I caught a glimpse of Jayvin’s eyes, all that was visible
above the crackle of jaundiced ice that had resettled his helmet in the wake of
the creature’s violent passage. His eyes were blank and unseeing, the slack
gaze of a corpse—but it saw us. It snapped the phaser up, faster than
should have been possible, and pointed it at Pike.
I remember screaming, and Pike kicked off of
the ground, hurtling himself at the creature that wore Jayvin’s body. Pike
crashed into him, losing his own phaser as the creature fired, the phaser’s
beam turning another chunk of wall into powder—and then they were
battling for control of the weapon, Pike gasping, Jayvin not seeming to breathe
at all.
I watched in horror as the phaser went off
again—and another rush of air blew into the chamber, new ice crystals
forming and floating and bathing the two men in shining fog. Pike fell away,
clutching at the massive tear in his suit, shouting for me to run as he worked
desperately to hold together the scorched fabric across his side.
I knew that Pike could not defend himself
against further attack, but I don’t pretend that I meant to lure the creature
away from him. I ran because I was terrified, because I was in shock, because I
was in danger. Because in some panicked recess of my mind, I connected the
creature’s chamber with all that had happened, and wanted nothing more than to
get away from that terrible place. I turned and stumbled into the tunnel,
struggling with the grav boots, not knowing where to go except away.
The next moments were a blur of luminous
shadows and panic. The environmental suit had a communicator, but I wasn’t
thinking clearly enough to do anything with it—even if I had been, it
wouldn’t have mattered. Pike had already transmitted a distress signal, but any
rescue party would be a long time coming, the Tereshkova’s transporters
useless. I had faint memories of control, of gathering myself and thinking
calmly in crisis, but all I could see was the way Jayvin’s eyes had looked
behind the faceshield. I was alone, Pike surely as dead as the others.
I might have continued in that half-aware
state for a while longer, hurrying blindly through the freezing tunnels,
looking to escape the fear that had taken me over as surely as the creature had
taken Jayvin—but the sound of Jayvin’s voice brought me back to myself.
Before I tell you what he said, what
happened, I want to make sure you understand—it wasn’t Jayvin Vod. It
was his voice, his body, even some of his memories ... but I don’t believe the
man who was my husband, your father, was aware at any point past the initial
attack. It’s small consolation, perhaps, but I cling to it now as I have for
the last fifteen years, and I believe it to be true. Jayvin Vod was already
dead.
The shouts that rang in my helmet were
incoherent at first. Unintelligible nonsense, words that weren’t words,
punctuated by wild fits of emotion—laughing, crying, howls of rage, and
of joy. I became aware of myself again, running, listening, lost in the passages
of the comet but slowly regaining self-control. I didn’t know what I was going
to do, but I slowed down and began to choose my direction, searching for
ascending tunnels.
The creature continued to babble in Jayvin’s
voice, running through his emotions as carelessly as one might go through a box
of tools. By the time I had come up with a course of action—get to the
surface, call for help from the Tereshkova, reach the shuttlecraft—it
had started using words and sentences pulled from Vod’s memories.
It was coming after me, I knew, it kept
saying, “where,” again and again—and as it became more coherent, I
realized that it had immersed itself in Vod in a way that was more terrifying
to me—to any joined Trill—than the threat of pain or death.
Neema, it was like some nightmare parody of zhian’tara, only instead of
past hosts emerging to share and teach, the creature had separated Vod within
Jayvin. The alien twisted through five lifetimes, dredging up memories of
anger, working to express itself using the thoughts of Vod’s constituent
personalities.
I heard Jayvin among the others—Timus,
Kelin, Calila, Baret, and Devinel all spoke, but the phrases they used were
chosen by the creature, all of the sentiments bitterly angry. I tried to speak
with it at first, but it wouldn’t respond; although it was obviously trying to
communicate, it seemed uninterested in what I had to say—and as I
continued to wind through the barren tunnels, exhausted and afraid, it finally
found its own voice. Much of what it had to say was as incomprehensible as its
earlier outbursts, the violent emotions it spewed taking the form of wordless,
raging screams. In the hours that I wandered the frozen underground, it told me
enough for me to be grateful that Jayvin was no more.
Its grasp of language was still new, so I
don’t know if its thoughts were translated with any precision. It talked until
Jayvin was hoarse, drifting off into strange loops in which it repeated itself
for moments at a time, but the thrust of its message was so deeply unsettling
that I didn’t want to credit it as any more than delusional ramblings. It was
an aberrant creature, a thing that referred to itself once as “the taker of
gist.” I listened, and gradually I found out why it had attacked—and
what it meant to do.
It wasn’t a symbiont at all. It was a parasite,
a thing that dominated its hosts, feeding from them, and it said that it was
“the first of many.” It said that its ship, controlled by “the veins,” was
taking it to find “the weak ones.” Now that it had a host again, nothing would
stop it from paving the way for those who would follow; it bragged that nothing
could stop it. And as it poured its diseased feelings out, it expressed
a depth of hatred and contempt for the Trill that seemed boundless. That it
knew about us before we’d come to its ship, there was no question; how, I never
found out.
I kept climbing, aware that my air wouldn’t
last forever, knowing that I had to warn others about the creature before I was
allowed the luxury of grief. In spite of my resolve, I cried steadily; hearing
the parasite speak in your father’s voice was torture, and more than once, I
didn’t think I could go on. What kept me moving, beyond the awareness that it
would kill me if it found me, was the thought of my children. In the tumult of
my feelings, I found a kind of relief that you were at home, safe, untouched by
the horror that I was enduring.
It seemed that I had been running, walking,
sobbing for a lifetime, the parasite’s words and feelings creating a shroud of
ugliness around me. Perhaps that’s why, when I stumbled upon a dead end, I
didn’t immediately turn around. Just a moment’s rest, I thought, sagging
against the icy rock, so tired that I felt I might die from it. When the
parasite started to laugh, I knew it had found me.
I turned to face it, knowing what I would
see and yet still surprised by it—Jayvin Vod, my lover, my friend, the
father of my children, walking toward me with a look of pure malice. Although I
couldn’t see his, its mouth, I knew it was smiling. The parasite, the
taker of gist, had won. I had no weapon, no strength, and only the vaguest
desire to survive, so overwhelmed by the horror of the endless night that I
simply waited. Waited for the thing to put an end to my torment.
I hardly knew I had spoken until it answered
my whispered question, the thought that had been with me for much of that
eternal chase.
“Why him, why not me?”
The Jayvin-thing tilted its head to one
side, and took a step toward me, raising the phaser.
“Because he was closer,” it said.
I thought of you, of Gran, closed my eyes—and
opened them again as the parasite crumpled, a grunt of shock emerging from its
last second of consciousness, a huge dent in the back of its helmet.
Christopher Pike stood behind it, holding a
slab of frozen rock in one shaking hand. The side of his suit was covered with
ice, hastily applied handfuls of the same viscous fluid that had served as the
parasite’s habitat—that had resealed Jayvin’s visor. He—we—had
survived; it was over.
Although not wounded, Pike was freezing,
almost out of air, and I was physically and emotionally wrung out—but
somehow, we managed to get back to the shuttlecraft, carrying Jayvin’s body
between us. I remember wondering how I could possibly go on, each step an
exercise in force of will—but we did it. Pike piloted the shuttle back
to the Tereshkova and ordered the captain to get us to Trill, maximum
speed. You’ve probably deduced the rest of the story, but I want, I need to
tell you. There are facts ... and then, there is truth.
I spent the journey home in sickbay, doing
what little I could for Jayvin. We pried the helmet off, and a scan showed that
the parasite had attached itself to Jayvin’s brain stem just inside the base of
the skull, the only visible sign of its domination a tiny barb protruding from
the back of his neck. The technology to detach the creature without killing
Jayvin didn’t—doesn’t—exist. There was nothing we could do.
While the medical officer was tending to
Pike, I scanned Vod, but the Starfleet equipment wasn’t able to tell me
anything. For the trip home, we kept Jayvin sedated. I thought that at least we
could keep him from suffering any more.
The best transplant surgeons were standing
by when we beamed down to Trill, a host prepped, and a hastily convened session
of the governing council waiting for me to tell them what had happened. I
stayed with my husband instead, waiting for the doctors to examine him—though
what they told me was as I’d expected. The symbiosis had dissolved, both Jayvin
and Vod were dying. Still, I prayed for the symbiont, that we could transplant
Vod and save Jayvin’s memories—but remembering the monster that had
hunted me through the cold dark, a worse dread took hold of me. I ordered a
scan of the symbiont’s neural patterns, and my fears were confirmed yet again—the
parasite’s consciousness had joined with Vod’s, the union permanent and
complete.
It was then that I met with the council
members, and made my recommendation.
To transfer Vod to another host was
unthinkable. There was no choice, none, except to let him die, and with him six
lifetimes of knowledge, memories, and experiences—including Jayvin’s.
I stayed with them until it was over, and
then I went home.
Christopher Pike was waiting there, sitting
outside in the light of early dawn, looking as tired as I felt. He’d come to
tell me what had happened with the comet, to reassure me that the immediate
threat had passed—although to be honest, my thoughts were elsewhere.
Selfish, perhaps, but I was still trying to understand that Jayvin was gone.
When Pike asked after him, I couldn’t speak—I only shook my head,
and struggled not to cry when I saw the sympathy in his eyes, as he told me how
sorry he was.
I sat down next to him on the front step of
our home, knowing that we had to talk, knowing that I had to bear my
responsibilities as a leader—but all I wanted to do was collapse. Pike
seemed to understand, keeping his speech brief and his tone gentle.
He told me that he’d spoken to Starfleet,
and that they were most displeased; less than an hour before, three Trill ships
had converged on the comet and blown it to so much vapor. I’d had nothing to do
with the decision, although it didn’t surprise me overmuch; we still had our
secret, you see. What we could have learned about the creature from studying
the comet—it was apparently not as important as keeping our symbiotic
nature to ourselves, or at least not to the councillors who’d called for the
alien ship’s destruction.
Pike
knew, of course. He’d heard the parasite’s ravings, all of it, and had deduced
what was not obvious. He told me that he understood why our government had felt
compelled to destroy the comet, and assured me that he would keep the entire
incident classified on his end—our
symbiotic nature would remain on a strictly need-to-know basis in Starfleet,
until we decided otherwise. He told me that if Starfleet learned anything at
all about the parasites, he would contact me—but made it clear that he
felt the action of the Trill had been ill-advised.
I
nodded, grateful that he was willing to keep our confidence, knowing he was
right to reproach us, however gently he phrased it. I had no doubt that our own
files would be sealed, but told him that I would also share whatever
information we found from examining the remains of the parasite. I believed then
that seeking out the deviant breed would become a priority for the Trill; I was
naive, to say the least. It hadn’t occurred to me yet that the knowledge of a
malevolent species so close to the symbionts would be unwelcome within our
society; that no one would want to pursue a truth that carried implications of
a connection between our precious symbionts and the thing that took Jayvin
away.
I
didn’t know, then, and I suppose Pike didn’t, either. I thanked him and he
started to go—but
stopped, turning back to ask a final question.
“Your
people’s secret, Dr. Dax,” he said softly. “Is it that important? Was it worth
all of those lives?”
I
thought I was too tired to cry anymore, but I was wrong. He waited until I
could compose myself, waited for my answer, and I knew that he wanted to hear
me tell him that it was—it
was what we both wanted to believe.
“I don’t know,” I said finally, and it
wasn’t much of an answer, but there wasn’t any other.
He left me then to my final task, one that I
hardly had the strength to complete—telling you and Gran that your
father was dead.
It sounds like some childish attempt to
avoid responsibility, but I didn’t mean to lie to you. I was adrift in my own
pain, and wanted only to ease yours. I told you what I thought would save you
from the intensity of loss that I felt, and by the time I understood the
magnitude of what I’d done, I didn’t know how to take it back. And by then, I
had constructed the foundation of denial that has been with me ever since.
Seven years later, you found out, and our
estrangement began. As I said before, I found ways to rationalize, my position,
my work—but politically, at least, nothing had changed. The powers that
be had moved on to other matters, and I’d all but given up trying to convince
the few council members who knew of the incident to take any kind of action.
There is no official record of the parasite’s existence anywhere on Trill, no
autopsy report, nothing. The council saw to that. I imagine that the records
were destroyed along with the creature’s body, or all of the evidence was filed
away somewhere, a dusty box in a dusty room, purposely forgotten.
And it seemed that Starfleet, too, had
decided to treat the disastrous mission as an isolated event. I tried to
contact Pike, more than once, but I couldn’t track him down; only a year after
we met, he was badly wounded in some kind of radiation accident, and
disappeared soon after. No one could even tell me if he was still alive.
As far as I know, the parasites have never
resurfaced, but every day for the last fifteen years, I’ve watched and
listened, doing what little one being can hope to do. I tried communicating
with the symbionts, to ask them about the creature, but the younger ones knew
nothing. And the oldest among them seemed not to hear my questions.
I am alone in my vigil, I believe, and am
always praying that the thing was lying. That it was one of a kind. But surely
I tell myself lies, too. You decide.
Four days ago, on my fifty-sixth birthday, I
stepped down as head of the Trill Symbiosis Commission. For weeks, I’ve known
that I would write this letter to you, that I couldn’t continue to use my
position as a shield. That I wouldn’t. I’ve let too much time slip away
already, my Neema, too much time regretting my mistakes and not letting myself
understand that I was making a much worse one. When Gran died five years ago,
never knowing any of this, I thought I would tell you then—that we would
find comfort in each other, and the truth would have to come out—but
somehow, we managed to avoid each other. To hold on to our own private sorrows,
sharing nothing. Time now for me to end this loneliness, or at least to try.
I’ve accepted your anger as some kind of
penance, as though I deserved to be hated by you for surviving. For coming
home, when your father did not. I’ve been selfish and stupid, and in denying
myself a loving relationship with my only surviving child, I’ve denied you.
I don’t expect for you to forgive me.
Writing these thoughts, understanding that you’ve been alone with your pain and
anger for eight years now ... I do understand, at least in part, and I’m not
asking for you to throw aside your rightful feelings and embrace my apology.
I’m not sure what I expect, or what I can even hope for, for myself. But for
you—my daughter, for you, I hope for peace. I hope that you will accept
that I love you, that no hour passes for me without you. Whether or not you
choose to have me in your life, you are always in mine.
Forever,
Audrid Dax
NEEMA CYL TURNED the
last page over, sighing, absently smoothing out the wrinkles and lines in the
soft paper. No tears this time, although there was a heaviness in her throat
that wouldn’t go away, and that was all right. In the weeks since she’d first
read the letter, she’d felt the bitterness seeping away from her feelings of
sorrow, and sorrow alone wasn’t such a terrible thing.
She
checked the time and sighed again; it was getting late. Gingerly, she folded
the rumpled pages and stood up from her desk, slipping the letter into the top
drawer. The house was silent and still, the darkness outside making her feel
that her small home was a sanctuary, a haven against the night, against the
unknown. Since receiving Audrid’s letter, she couldn’t help but feel that the
world—that the universe—was no longer safe. Knowing the truth had changed
things, had created a sense of wariness in her that had never existed before
... but that wasn’t such a terrible thing, either. There was much to be done,
and learning to be watchful was the first step.
She
took a deep breath, letting it out slowly. There would be time for that later.
Tonight, she had other business, and it was already late. Maybe too late. Neema
looked at the clock again—
—And
the door chimed softly at her, and she couldn’t get there fast enough. Another
deep breath, a rush of belated fear that too much had been lost, and the door
slid open.
The
heaviness in her broke apart, the tears spilling out as Audrid, older,
stronger, gazed lovingly into her eyes.
Eyes
like my father’s, Neema
thought, and stepped forward, both of them reaching out, both of them crying.
“Mother,”
Neema whispered, and they stood in the open doorway for a long time, each
unwilling to let the other go.
“Life’s
too short to deprive yourself of the simple pleasures.”
—Torias Dax
“Facets”
Susan Wright is the author of several Star Trek novels,
including The Best and the Brightest; Star Trek: Voyager—Violations;
Star Trek: The Next Generation—Sins of Commission; Star Trek: Deep Space
Nine—The Tempest; the two-volume series, The Badlands, featuring
all the Star Trek crews; and the two-volume mirror universe saga, Dark
Passions.
Wright received her masters in art history from
New York University in 1989 and has been a full-time writer in New York City
since 1991. She’s written a number of non-fiction books on art and popular
culture, such as Destination Mars: In Art, Myth, and Science (Viking);
UFO Headquarters (St. Martin’s Press); and New York City in
Photographs: 1850-1945 (Barnes & Noble).
Wright’s work has appeared in magazines such as
Cosmopolitan and Redbook. She has also written comic books,
including several for Magic: The Gathering, and the Timewalker series.
She was a contributing writer and editor on the CD-ROM action/strategy game Magic:
The Gathering—BattleMage.
Susan Wright
TORIAS
DAX VERIFIED the heading of the shuttlecraft. All systems were go.
“I’m at full impulse power,” he reported to control. “Engaging transwarp
engines.”
The
starfield turned into broad streaks radiating from the middle of the viewscreen
as the shuttle began the transition from one-quarter light-speed to warp 10,
bypassing conventional warp speed entirely. Torias was pressed back into the
pilot’s seat. He reached out to adjust the warp frequency as it began to
fluctuate within the dilithium crystals.
The
velocity indicator went off the scale. The pressure against his body grew
stronger.
“Engines
at maximum output,” he reported steadily.
When
the shuttle crossed the warp 10 threshold, the strain suddenly released,
letting him breathe again. A burst of light flooded the cockpit.
“I’m at
warp 10!” Torias announced.
His adrenaline
was pumping from the successful flight. He had done it dozens of times before,
but he still savored the moment of victory.
The
illusion was rudely broken when Captain Styles cracked the seal on the
simulator room. Torias was back in the shuttle simulator on the Starfleet
Spacedock station in orbit of Earth. But for a moment, the transwarp flight had
seemed real.
“Well
done.” Styles strolled into the simulator, his swagger stick tucked under his
arm. “You handled her nicely, Captain Dax.”
“Thank
you, Captain Styles,” Torias replied courteously.
“It’ll
be some show when the Excelsior crosses the warp 10 barrier,” Styles
added, glancing around the simulator with great satisfaction. “I’ll have the
engineers refit this unit with the Excelsior’s bridge. We can begin the
simulator runs immediately.”
Torias
kept his smile firmly in place. “After tomorrow, you won’t need a shuttle
simulator anymore. You’ll have a real shuttle that can travel at transwarp
speed.”
“Yes,
that’s the plan.” Styles paced around the simulator, undoubtedly with an eye to
ripping out the fittings.
Torias
tolerated Captain Styles as a means to an end. Styles was scheduled to take
official command of the Federation starship Excelsior at the
commissioning ceremonies in two days. But first Torias would get his chance.
The transwarp team had received permission from Starfleet Command to flight
test the transwarp shuttle tomorrow. Getting Styles’s permission to proceed was
a mere formality, but Torias knew that Styles could delay the test if he
decided it was in his best interest.
“The
Great Experiment,” Captain Styles said, as if the words themselves were
satisfying. Torias wasn’t sure if he meant the transwarp project or the Excelsior.
Probably both. Styles already seemed to consider them the same.
“Excuse
me, sir,” someone said as she entered the simulator. She wore a red jumpsuit
uniform with the bright red collar and placard indicating she was still a
cadet. Her dark hair was twisted up in a knot high on the back of her head,
revealing pointed ears.
“Yes,
Mr. Saavik?” Styles said absently.
“Sir,
the fluctuations in the warp frequency continue to create a velocity
differential.” Saavik glanced at Torias, knowing he would be concerned. They
had worked together for the past several weeks, ironing out the last snags in
the transwarp drive.
Torias
went directly to the control room adjacent to the simulator. The readouts were
being discussed by the three quantum warp scientists who had developed the
transwarp project from its inception at the new Daystrom Institute. Lieutenant
Lahra and Professor Pokano were Starfleet officers, while Nilani Kahn was a
fellow Trill. She was also Torias’s wife.
“The
unexplained anomalies in the warp frequency continue to cause fluctuations,”
Nilani told Torias, pointing to the spikes in the readout.
“It
could be a phantom echo resulting from the lack of sensor data at warp 10,”
Torias reminded her.
“But it
appears in the mathematical readout as well,” Nilani said thoughtfully. “That’s
counter-indicative of phantom echoes.”
Captain
Styles joined them, his chin lifted high with satisfaction. “We can’t theorize
about conditions on the other side of the threshold. Warp 10 itself is a
theoretical impossibility.”
“Not
any longer, sir,” Nilani pointed out respectfully. The alluring Trill scientist
could silence Styles like no one else could.
Torias
grinned at his wife behind the captain’s back. He had taken to imitating
Captain Styles when he and Nilani were alone in their quarters, usually by
swinging around an old servo wrench in the same way Styles punctuated his
conversations using his swagger stick. Nilani would curl up in laughter, saying
his imitation was “too good.”
Torias
understood what she meant. He had been called arrogant himself by a few
Starfleet officers since they had transferred the transwarp project to the
Earth docking station. But no one knew that he was the fifth host of the Dax
symbiont. Torias himself was young, having left the Symbiosis Institute only
half a year ago after struggling for weeks through the confusion of his new
memories. But his strongest memories were naturally of Dax’s last host, the
venerable Audrid, former head of the Trill Symbiosis Commission. Because of her
many outstanding achievements, he felt a certain pressure to make his life
remarkable, to live up to his symbiont and its former hosts.
Nilani
said she had felt the same way at first, but having had her symbiont for nearly a year, she assured him that the
fierce driving memories would surely ease. Nilani had always comforted him, as
he had supported her during the years they had trained together as initiates at
the Symbiosis Institute. It had created a deep bond between them, stronger than
the trust usually shared by lovers. They had married the day after Torias left
the institute, and they joined the transwarp developmental project soon after
that.
Captain
Styles smiled at Nilani. “I’ve asked Cadet Saavik to do the next simulator run.
If you’re ready to proceed?”
“Please
give us a moment to clear the last test results, Captain.” Nilani concentrated
on her console. Lt. Lahra and Professor Pokano stayed at their posts, prepared
to monitor the telemetry from the next simulator flight.
Torias
was forced to step to the rear of the control room, watching through the
one-way window as Saavik settled into the pilot’s seat of the simulator.
“Proceed,”
Captain Styles ordered. He paced back and forth behind the scientists’
shoulders, watching the readouts as the simulation ran. The silver end of the
swagger stick protruded from under his left arm.
Saavik
handled the simulator controls with competence. She had a girl’s face, with
full lips and cheeks, yet the stoic demeanor common among her people made her
seem older than she was. Saavik had been assigned to assist with the flight
simulations because of her exceptional expertise in warp navigation, despite
being a cadet.
“Watching
her go through the simulation, Torias knew it wouldn’t be much longer before he
was officially thanked and shown to the door. After the Excelsior was
commissioned and Captain Styles took command of the project, there would be
dozens of experienced Starfleet pilots lining up to cross the transwarp
threshold. A Trill volunteer wouldn’t have a chance.
“Nearing
critical velocity,” Saavik reported.
Torias’s
reflection in the glass of the simulator looked grim; a tall, slender,
dark-haired man. Captain Styles was much closer to the window, with his
thinning hair and trim mustache catching the light. Torias wished that Styles
wouldn’t lean so close to Nilani’s upswept hair. He was practically breathing
down her neck, making her auburn curls shift against her collar. But Nilani was
concentrating on the simulation and she didn’t notice anything else around her.
“The
warp 10 threshold has been crossed,” Saavik announced.
Torias
was disturbed by Saavik’s calm, assured tone. Not that he had anything against
Saavik. She was a good kid—a genuine sentiment, though one undoubtedly
amplified by the warm memories he’d inherited of Vulcans known to Dax’s
previous hosts.
But
Saavik and the other Starfleet pilots represented an end to his dreams. Torias
had worked too hard for this project to lose his chance now. The transwarp
shuttle, the Infinity, was ready to fly. So was he.
“I’m
reading minimal fluctuations in the warp frequency,” Nilani reported. “They’re
within an acceptable margin of error.”
“Well done!”
Captain Styles was as pleased as if he had piloted the simulation himself.
Saavik
left the simulator room as Lt. Lahra congratulated the cadet. “That was the
best run we’ve had so far, Saavik.”
Saavik
shrugged off the compliment. “I compensated by recalibrating the field symmetry
of the dilithium crystals. However I believe the fluctuations indicate there is
a malfunction in the triangulation of the navigational system.”
“I’ve
been worried about the differential velocity, too,” Nilani agreed. “The numbers
work, but what if there’s an unknown factor that is uncounted for by the
simulation?”
Captain
Styles let out a disbelieving snort of laughter. “Then why was Saavik’s run
clean?”
“The
fluctuations appear to be random,” Nilani said slowly.
“Perhaps
additional theoretical work is needed before a test flight takes place,” Saavik
suggested.
Lt.
Lahra and Professor Pokano joined in the discussion, considering the
possibilities. Since warp 10 was theoretically infinite velocity, it should be
possible to occupy every point in the universe simultaneously. But they didn’t
know if the navigational array would work in transwarp.
Torias
patiently waited until the scientists were brought back to the same point. They
couldn’t answer their own questions because they were dealing with the unknown.
That’s
when he stepped forward. “We’ve done everything we can do in simulations. We won’t
know for sure until I test the transwarp shuttle at full impulse power.”
“Quite
right,” Captain Styles agreed. “The only way to find out is to forge ahead.”
Lt.
Lahra and Professor Pokano agreed. Even Saavik nodded. Only Nilani was frowning
slightly in concern. Torias resolutely avoided her eyes.
Styles
saluted them with his stick. “Congratulations everyone. The test will proceed
at oh-nine-hundred tomorrow morning. It will be a momentous event, a fitting
kickoff for the commissioning ceremonies of the Excelsior.”
Torias
spent some time with Saavik going over the recalibrations of the field symmetry
she had used to compensate for the warp frequency fluctuation in the dilithium
crystals. Then he filed his report on the daily simulator run. He was pleased
when he received his flight orders for the test the next day.
After
that, he transported back to the Excelsior. The starship was enormous,
the first in its class. A skeleton crew was already on board installing the
transwarp core and running induction diagnostics on the systems. The Excelsior
even had that new-ship smell; a hint of fresh coolant fluid, synthetic
fibers, and recently scrubbed tritanium. Torias thought it was invigorating,
but then again, he lived to fly new starships.
Torias
and Nilani had been assigned quarters on board the Excelsior when the Infinity
was transferred from the Daystrom Institute. Their rooms were clearly guest
quarters rather than standard crew accommodations.
Though
Torias knew that Nilani would be waiting for him, he stopped by the hangar deck
to take one more look at the Infinity.
A security guard challenged Torias before
recognizing him as part of the development team. Captain Styles had heightened
security several weeks ago when the team informed him they were close to a
breakthrough.
Torias
paced around the Infinity, as familiar as an old friend. He had helped
develop the structure of the shuttle and its appealing ergonomic style. The bow
came to a low point, and the hull swept back at a sharp angle. The nacelles
were tucked underneath the body of the shuttle.
Torias
wished the commissioning of the Excelsior had been delayed a week or
two, allowing them to complete the flight test in a quiet, professional manner.
But Captain Styles liked to make an impact, and he was using the transwarp
project for every bit of notoriety it could bring him.
Dignitaries
were already arriving to view the flight test. The chief of Starfleet Command
himself, Admiral Morrow, had transported up from Starfleet Headquarters and was
staying in his quarters aboard Spacedock. Nilani had mentioned that another
noteworthy member of Starfleet brass, Admiral Kirk, was coming in tonight from
the Academy.
Torias
still half-expected a hand to fall on his shoulder, informing him that he had
been replaced with a Starfleet pilot for the flight test. It would surely
complicate diplomatic relations with Trill if he was replaced at this late
date, but they were dealing with a great deal of power in this project.
Transwarp technology could transform interstellar travel and change the way
everyone lived.
Torias
ran his hand along the port hull of the Infinity. There was a lot of
activity on the hangar deck with technicians noisily adjusting a bent pylon on
another shuttle nearby. But Torias had eyes only for his ship. Together
they would make history.
His
fingers brushed over the name. The waiting was over. Tomorrow he would reach
for infinity.
When
Torias returned to their quarters, he found Nilani hunched over her tricorder.
Her brow was furrowed and one foot rapidly tapped the table in front of the
couch. A sure sign she was distressed.
“What
have you got there?” Torias leaned over and kissed the top of her head. He
breathed in deeply the fresh scent of her hair.
“The
readouts from your simulator run,” Nilani said without looking up.
“Aren’t
you going to give me a kiss?” Torias asked plaintively. “I’ve had a hard day
busting the warp 10 barrier, you know.”
Nilani
raised her head to return his kiss.
“Mmm
...” Torias murmured. “That’s a better way to greet your loving mate.” He went
toward the food slot. “What do you want to eat tonight?”
“It
doesn’t matter to me.” Nilani returned to the readouts on her tricorder.
Torias
could see it wasn’t going to be easy to distract her, so he didn’t bother.
While she worked on the mathematical calculations of the transwarp drive, he
dialed up their dinner. He asked for samples of a dozen of their favorite
foods, many of them discovered while they were working at the Daystrom
Institute.
He
ordered the computer to play some Trill bell music for background ambiance,
while he set out one glass of a bubbly celebratory wine that was popular on
Earth. None for him tonight. He had to be sharp tomorrow for the flight test.
Tomorrow night he would share a whole bottle with his wife.
“Dinner’s
served,” Torias announced.
Nilani
looked confused, as if she hadn’t realized what he was doing.
“Put
that away,” he told her. “Let’s spend some time together.”
Nilani
sat down across from him, her sweet face unusually serious. “I’m worried about
the flight test tomorrow. I don’t think the shuttle is ready.”
“It’s
ready.” Torias scooped up some of the crispy shellfish she liked. He fed her
one and her lips automatically closed around it. “Even if it does blow up, I’ll
be wearing the emergency transporter suit, so I’ll be fine.”
“Don’t
say that,” Nilani protested with a shudder.
“You
should be glad.” Torias leaned closer. “We’ve done it! We’ve worked nonstop for
months to develop transwarp, and we’ve done it.”
“But
there are so many unknowns in multi-spectral subspace mechanics—”
“And
tomorrow, we’ll know more,” he interrupted. “I fully expect there’ll be a few
kinks to work out. That’s what flight testing is all about, to work out the
last details.”
“But
it’s so dangerous ...” Nilani murmured, bending her head.
“It’s
my job,” Torias reminded her. “You knew that when you married me. I’ve been
training for this for months, wearing that infernal ETS.”
Nilani
actually smiled at the thought of the days he had spent in the emergency
transporter suit; flying the shuttle, walking through the corridors of Excelsior,
even while he was eating dinner. But it had conditioned his reaction time
to the bulky, mesh-line jumpsuit and helmet. In effect, the ETS was a modern
analog to the ejection seats of some primitive aircraft. The suit was a pattern
enhancer designed to relay homing telemetry to a transporter on board the Excelsior
that was on constant standby.
“It’s
not as dangerous as you’re imagining,” Torias said lightly. “I think you worry
too much because you don’t know what you’d do without me—”
Nilani
shook her head and raised her hand to his lips to stop him.
“Then
come here and kiss me.” Torias insisted on pulling her closer to sit on his
knees.
She
laughed and cuddled into his lap, returning his kisses. The bell music played
on.
After
that, it was all right. They talked about everything but the flight test as
they sampled the delicious food. Nilani told him that Lt. Lahra was going to
recommend her for a permanent post on the Excelsior to assist in
training the Starfleet engineers in transwarp theory. Torias was agreeable to
staying on with Starfleet, but Nilani thought it would be difficult working
with Captain Styles.
So they
talked about returning to Trill where they could create their own transwarp
design facility. Nilani seemed to prefer that idea. Torias didn’t care where
they went, as long as they were together. No long separations for them. If they
had to, they would take turns helping each other further their careers. That’s
why a Trill transwarp facility appealed to both of them. Torias could train the
pilots while Nilani headed up the developmental design team.
Torias
stood up with Nilani in his arms, spinning her around the room. Their sleek
Starfleet quarters suddenly felt very alien. “Then let’s plan on going home,
what do you say?” Torias asked.
Nilani’s
arms tightened around his neck. “Yes! As soon as I get clearance to copy the
data on our research.”
“That
should be no trouble; it’s part of our technological exchange agreement,”
Torias said.
“But
there’s the commissioning ceremonies for the Excelsior day after
tomorrow,” Nilani said doubtfully.
“I know
you want to meet this Admiral Kirk everyone’s talking about,” Torias teased,
rubbing his nose against hers. “I don’t mean that soon.”
“It’s
not just Kirk,” Nilani protested. “It’ll be exciting to see the Excelsior launched.
And I’d like to incorporate the results from the flight test tomorrow. ...”
Torias
silenced her with kisses before she could get worried again about the test. He
carried her into their bedroom. It didn’t matter when they left or how long
they stayed. They had their whole lives ahead of them.
Torias
was finally able to let the preflight euphoria wash over him ... knowing that
anything was possible. He always felt this way before a test flight. It was
even better than going into battle. The transwarp flight would give him the
chance to do something remarkable, something that would change people’s lives.
The
anticipation made him heady as he caressed Nilani, wanting to touch every part
of her. Standing on the threshold of infinite speed was a powerful stimulant,
and making love to Nilani took him right over the edge of his senses.
Torias
woke early the next morning, feeling fresh and wide awake the moment his eyes
opened. He carefully slid out of bed without disturbing Nilani. Her beautiful
curves were tempting under the flimsy sheet, but he restrained himself from
waking her.
In the
fresher, his flight suit was waiting. Torias quickly washed up and dressed. His
spots were dark, like his hair, and were stark against his pale skin. Pausing
for a moment, he stared at his black eyes. “Too intense” one young woman had
called him, just before he had entered the Symbiosis Institute. Well, that
intensity had gotten him everything he wanted, including Nilani and the
transwarp flight test.
Torias
walked softly through the bedroom. He knew the comm would go off in a few
minutes to wake Nilani, but he wanted to slip away before that. He wanted to
remember her like she was last night, warm and loving, not nervous and
analytical like she would be this morning.
At the
doorway, he looked back. Her hair spread against the pillow, the fiery strands
glowing in the dim light of the bedroom. One hand was palm-up on the bed, and
he wanted to kiss it. Instead he whispered softly, “I love you.”
He knew
she would have too much to do in the science lab before and during the test to
worry. By the time he got back, she would no longer be angry at him for running
off without a proper good-bye.
Before
Torias left their quarters, he found her tricorder where she had dropped it
last night. He propped it up on the table next to the door where she would see
it. She was always misplacing her tricorder—his sweet absent-minded professor.
During
the prelaunch preparations, Torias went over the entire shuttle with a
hand-scanner. He was looking for micro-fractures that could react adversely to
the slightest velocity differential in the hull. But the Infinity had
been reinforced and was sealed tight. Even if there was unusual stress on the hull,
the extra fusion generator would compensate by increasing the structural
integrity field.
Torias
slid out from under the starboard nacelle and was brushing off his hands when
Captain Styles rounded the shuttlecraft. A group of a dozen or more Starfleet
officers were following him.
“There
you are, my boy,” Styles said heartily. “Ready for the big flight?”
“Aye,
aye, Captain,” Torias said evenly.
As they
came closer, Captain Styles gestured to a tall dark gentleman wearing an
admiral’s placard and collar. “Torias Dax, this is Admiral Morrow, Chief of
Starfleet Command. Admiral, this is the young man I’ve been telling you about.”
“Pleased
to meet you.” Admiral Morrow shook Torias’s hand in the human ritual greeting.
His thick black mustache almost hid his smile, and a dusting of gray lightened
his short curling black hair. “Starfleet is glad to have this opportunity to
work so closely with Trill in this bold undertaking.”
“Thank
you.” Torias relied on past-host memories of diplomatic protocol. “Trill is proud
to be a part of this historic event with the Federation.”
Frown
lines appeared between the Admiral’s eyes. “As long as the shuttle is ready.”
“The Infinity
is ready,” Torias confirmed.
But he
tensed when the admiral waved a young woman out of the knot of Starfleet
assistants who were politely standing back. “Cadet Saavik has a suggestion.
Cadet?”
Saavik
came forward to give her report. “I believe I have discovered a way to prevent
the fluctuations you experienced in the warp frequency. It would require an
alteration in the computer software program to synchronize the navigational
constant with the transwarp field of the Infinity.”
Captain
Styles seemed irritated. “It would take days to reprogram the navigational
computer, Cadet. Then another week of simulator runs before flight testing
could take place.”
“But if
it would be better to wait,” Morrow cautioned, “then let’s take our time. This
is an important experiment, and I wouldn’t like anything to go wrong.”
Admiral
Morrow glanced at the wall of windows lining the upper hangar deck. Torias
followed his gaze and for the first time realized the observation lounge was
filled with people. Many of them were wearing the formal gold-braided Starfleet
uniform. This was turning into quite the event.
Torias
had already noticed the group of Starfleet pilots gathered to one side of the
bay, restricted from getting any closer to the test shuttle. But their envious
expressions spoke clearly—they all wanted a crack at the Infinity. Perhaps
Morrow was also seeing the advantages to having a Starfleet pilot be the first
to cross the transwarp threshold.
Torias
firmly stilled his panic. He wasn’t going to let the test flight slip away from
him now. He asked Saavik, “Did you show the scientists your calculations?”
“Yes,
they agreed the alterations may correct the problem.”
“They
didn’t have much time to examine your theory, did they?” When she shook her
head, he said thoughtfully, “Then it must be an extension of the work they were
doing, rather than a new approach.”
She
raised one brow slightly. “That is correct.”
Torias
turned to Admiral Morrow. “Cadet Saavik has merely suggested a refinement in
our current navigational procedure. However, the project scientists have
already agreed that the fluctuations are within an acceptable margin of error.
I’m sure we’ll discover additional areas of refinement during this flight
test.”
“Quite
right!” Captain Styles agreed. “The transwarp design will undoubtedly be
improved as we put the Infinity through her paces.”
“What’s
the level of risk in testing the shuttle with its current navigational
program?” Morrow asked Torias.
“Minimal,”
Torias replied. “With the use of the ETS, I would say the risk is closer to
nonexistent.”
“Ah,
yes,” Captain Styles said. “The emergency transporter suit. An incredible
machine. Would you like to see it, Admiral?”
Captain
Styles led Admiral Morrow toward the suit where it hung on the rack, prepared
for Torias to put on prior to departure. Torias had made several tests of the
emergency transporter suit, and each time he had been examined and cleared by
Dr. Dareel, the Trill doctor in residence at the Trill Embassy on Earth. Torias
had also been examined by Dr. Christine Chapel of Starfleet Medical, but the
Federation doctors had been unable to differentiate the symbiont from his Trill
anatomy. Trill continued to be committed to a controversial policy of
nondisclosure when it came to the symbionts, but Torias and Nilani had
dutifully complied.
While
the rest of the crowd of Starfleet observers joined Admiral Morrow around the
suit, Saavik stayed behind. “As I indicated,” she told Torias, “I do not
believe you understand the implications of my research. The subspace torque
from the differential velocity could destroy the shuttle.”
“She’s
a strong ship.” Torias patted the tritanium hull of Infinity. He didn’t
blame Saavik for her insistence. She was just an eager kid trying to impress
her superiors.
“I do
not understand your desire to continue with the flight test,” Saavik said.
“You’re
a navigator, not a test pilot,” Torias reminded her. “Most people would delay
forever rather than take a chance with the unknown.”
Saavik
shook her head slightly, looking perplexed.
“Come
Saavik!” Captain Styles ordered from across the hangar deck. “You can discuss
your theories later. Captain Dax has a flight test to complete.”
Saavik
glanced down, absorbing the public rebuff without a murmur. Then she told
Torias, “I wish you well.”
“Thank
you, Saavik.” Torias winked at her. “You’ll see that I’m right.”
Getting
into the emergency transporter suit took some time, but finally Torias was
ready in the pilot’s seat of the Infinity. His fingers were left free of
the mesh suit, and he acknowledged the final cross-checks with a few taps on
the panels.
Then he
activated the viewscreen, clearing the pale blue Federation symbol of a
starfield supported by laurels. He opened a channel to the transwarp science
lab on board the Excelsior.
Nilani
answered, looking up at the screen. “You’re ready, my love?” she asked.
“I’m
waiting for the go-ahead.” He thought it was just like her not to mention the
way he had left this morning. “I’ll be back soon.”
Nilani
glanced over her shoulder to make sure no one was listening. “Warp 10 might be
just fast enough.”
Torias
smiled into her eyes, remembering last night. They both laughed as they signed
off. He couldn’t wait to celebrate with her.
He
switched to the command channel. “Shuttlecraft Infinity prepared for
launch.”
The
hangar deck had been cleared except for the people filling the observation
lounge along the upper level.
“Depressurizing
hangar deck,” Captain Styles
replied. He was standing at the command console in the launching control room.
“Infinity, you are cleared for launch.”
The
lights flashed red in the bay to warn any lingerers that the atmosphere was being
removed. Torias settled his helmet one last time as the tractor beam conveyed
him out of the Excelsior’s hangar deck. He could see arms waving in the
observation lounge.
Engaging
thrusters, he took over control of the Infinity. He maneuvered through the
inside of the enormous Spacedock station, a curved enclosure containing a
number of Starfleet vessels.
As the Infinity
moved away from the starships, Torias could see the interior walls of the
station lined by observation windows. Some were several levels high, and they
also were filled with people waving at him.
The
great square docking doors were opening, revealing space beyond. The shuttle
passed through, then lifted over the spindle-shaped station, clearing the
series of graceful domes and spires that capped the top.
As the Infinity
pulled away from the station, the brilliant blue and white Earth dominated
the viewscreen. At a distance of ten-thousand meters, the station looked small
against the planet below.
“Infinity
is clear of the docking station,” Torias reported.
“Bon
voyage, Infinity,” Captain Styles said over the comm.
Torias
engaged impulse engines and the Infinity shot away at one-quarter
impulse.
For a
moment Torias felt as if he were back in the simulator. The two cockpits were
identical. But the subtle movements of the genuine shuttle couldn’t be
imitated. His breath came shorter as his body reacted to the experience of
hurtling through space. Some people couldn’t tolerate space, but Torias had
loved it from his first interplanetary voyage when he was a boy.
“Increasing
speed to one-half impulse,” Torias reported, trying not to think of all the
people listening back at the station.
The
velocity indicator climbed to three-quarters, then reached full impulse speed.
“Infinity,
you are cleared for transwarp velocity,” Captain Styles informed him.
“Engaging
transwarp engines,” Torias confirmed.
The
shuttle began to shake and the interior lights dimmed. The glow from the screen
brightened as the stars blurred into streaks. Torias was pushed back into his
seat as the transwarp drive leapt beyond warp speeds.
“Vector’s
drifting!” he called, noticing the navigational shift. “I’m stabilizing the
field symmetry.”
The
vector wavered then held steady. He kept a close watch on the warp frequency,
but it, too, held steady. Everything was go.
“Velocity
is off the scale. I’m approaching the threshold.”
Torias
could feel it ... as if he was stretching out and slowing down. His hand moved
slower as he adjusted the flow regulator to the dilithium crystals. The warp
frequency fluctuated—
Suddenly
the universe was still. And for an instant, Torias was everywhere.
He
was not only in the pilot’s seat of the Infinity, he was also on the bridge of the Excelsior, and on
the observation deck with all the dignitaries. He could see Saavik bite her lip
in an uncharacteristic show of concern. He could see the blood vessels
quivering on the surface of her eye. ...
But
somehow Torias was also back on Trill, in the farthest depths of the symbiont
pools. He was flying over the wind-blown icy cliffs of Tenara, and standing in
the purple waters of the southern ocean with the sun beating down on his head. ...
He
was in places too numerous to count, with experiences flashing through him;
from a deep space freighter near a supernova to a slow-moving microbe on an
inductor chip. He could hear the voices and cries of trillions of beings
merging into one vast booming, living mass. He could see everything at once. He
knew everything. He realized he could be anywhere he wanted to be.
At the same time he was standing next to
Nilani in the science lab where it was perfectly silent. She was radiant, her
hair and skin aglow. He felt himself reach out to touch her face, feeling his
fingers brush aside individual atoms as they parted the air, feeling everything.
...
Nilani’s
eyes were fixed on the viewscreen as the Infinity exploded. She tried to
tell herself the flare was simply a result of crossing the warp 10 threshold.
She couldn’t believe her eyes.
But
everyone’s reaction was unmistakable. Lt. Lahra cried out and covered her mouth
with both hands.
“Transporter
room?” Captain Styles called
through the open channel from the hangar deck. The hush seemed too heavy to
bear.
“We
have a medical emergency!” the
transporter room responded. “Something’s wrong. He’s having trouble
breathing—”
The
communication was cut, maybe by someone who didn’t want the news going over an
open channel. But Nilani was already running to the turbolift.
She
could hear people talking to her but she didn’t know what they were saying. It
didn’t matter. Nothing mattered but finding Torias.
The
transporter room was crowded but the others parted to let her through. Dr.
Chapel was scanning Torias, and she glanced up at Nilani, her expression stark. “The shuttle was breaking apart when
he transported. He’s suffered massive internal injuries. I’ll have to operate.”
Nilani
knelt down next to Torias, her heart clenching at the way his body was
contorted. He looked bad, very bad. She might have stared at him forever, but
her years of training spoke for her. “Stasis,” she managed to say. “He must be
put in stasis until our doctors can get to him.”
Dr.
Chapel hesitated, but medical protocols involving Trills were strict. “I’ll
transport him directly into a stasis chamber,” she agreed.
As Torias
dematerialized, Nilani reached out to touch him. She couldn’t bear the agony on
his face. Then he was gone.
“The Infinity
didn’t pass the warp 10 threshold,” someone said regretfully.
It was
Saavik. The cadet helped her to stand up. Nilani wasn’t sure how Saavik had
gotten there, but she was grateful to be able to cling to someone familiar.
“I am
sorry,” Saavik said. “I attempted to warn Captain Dax that a hazardous subspace
torque could occur.”
“He
convinced us it would work,” Nilani said, dazed.
She saw
faces everywhere, watching her, their eyes sympathetic. It was too much.
“Perhaps
I failed to communicate my concerns properly,” Saavik said.
Nilani
realized that Saavik was upset, as upset as Vulcans ever got. She also realized
there would be terrible
consequences for everyone involved. But right now, she couldn’t think.
“Please
take me to the sickbay,” Nilani told her. “I want to be with Torias.”
Nilani
reached the stasis chamber not long before Dr. Dareel transported up from the
Trill Embassy in Nagano. While the doctor examined Torias through the stasis
field, Nilani stayed nearby. She couldn’t touch Torias while he was in stasis,
and that bothered her.
She
didn’t want to believe it, but she could read the soft pings on the monitors as
well as the medical technicians. There was nothing they could do to save
Torias. His body lived while he was in stasis, but there was no brain activity.
Soon
the Trill diplomatic ferry arrived with its appropriately equipped medical lab,
where Dr. Dareel could perform the delicate operation to remove the
still-living symbiont from its host. That was the important thing, to save the
symbiont with its precious memories. Everyone on board was congratulating
Nilani for her quick thinking. Stasis had saved Dax.
Once
the symbiont was removed, Nilani was allowed to be with Torias in the operating
room as his lifesigns faded. No one watched her cry because no one was
interested in the empty host ... the flesh she yearned for.
She
couldn’t stop touching him to feel his fading warmth, to smell his skin. She
couldn’t face the long years ahead, knowing how deeply she loved him, knowing
how much he loved her. She couldn’t imagine what life would be like alone, with everything they had planned and
dreamed impossible now. Gone in a heartbeat.
As the
doctor carried away the symbiont, Nilani was alone with Torias at last. She
pressed his hand against her cheek, touching it against the spot that still
tingled ever since that final, terrible moment in the science lab ... and she
knew that moment would define the rest of her lives.
“I’ve
been ignored far too long.”
—Joran Dax
“Field of Fire”
“Allegro Ouroboros in D Minor” is S. D. Perry’s second
contribution to The Lives of Dax, following “Sins of the Mother.” She
plans to return to the Star Trek universe soon.
Robert Simpson made his first professional sale at age
sixteen and in the last eighteen years has been an agent, a writer, and an
editor who has worked with hundreds of authors including the “ABC” of science
fiction—Isaac Asimov, Ray Bradbury, and Arthur C. Clarke. A former editor for Twilight
Zone magazine, he has also written and edited novels, websites, CD-ROMs,
comics, magazines, and other projects for Lucasfilm, Paramount Pictures,
HarperCollins, Topps Publishing, DC Comics, Nickelodeon, Bantam Books, Pocket
Books, Golden Books, Scott Rudin Prods., Marvel Comics, The United
Nations/World Health Organization, and the New York chapter of The National
Epilepsy Foundation. A fan of true crime stories, he also served for a brief
time as the reprint editor on the classic book of murder and obsession Helter
Skelter. He lives in New York.
S. D. Perry and
Robert Simpson
THE
FIRST NOTES spilled out into the darkened room like rain, soft but
not gentle, conjuring memories of twilight summer storms from childhoods
past—of suddenness, of unexpected drama, of something new in the face of the
existing. It was a strong beginning, and as Joran’s fingers found the keys,
stroking the composition to life, he felt its power wash over and through him
with the violence of a tempest. Thought fell away, replaced by feelings of
connection and movement that harmonized perfectly with the smooth sounds rising
up from the syn lara. With the pale, dancing light and deep undertone of
his most recent conquest playing alongside his last, both images in their
proper places above and behind the stringed instrument, he could feel the piece
coming together like never before.
In his
space of concentration, he was reborn into the music, becoming the body within
the storm. He rediscovered the melody of dissonance that was its heart, and
felt the beat in his own veins. From the shifting light that bathed the room in
motion, he created thunder, becoming its wrath even as he sought shelter
within the circle that was forming, shining into life and fading to ash, the
end as the beginning—
A
single note hesitated, stretching an instant too long ... and it was over, that
simply. The music was lost, and he was only Joran Dax again, hunched over the
grand syn lara in the near dark of his private parlor.
“Lights,”
he snapped, his voice sharp with frustration. The sudden glow from the wall
panels faded the dual projections into ghosts, illuminating the sound-proofed
chamber and transforming it from a place of dreams to a banal reality—and
illuminating the problem, which he’d already guessed at. A slender crust of
dried blood had wedged between two of the keys, changing the delicate quaver of
the middle C to a crotchet.
His
impatience had cost him this night’s practice. He’d been overly eager, rushing
to see what would be added to the piece before cleaning up properly; it wasn’t
the first time. Joran sighed, suddenly too exhausted to be angry with himself.
He
stood up and moved toward the door, really seeing himself for the first time in
hours as he stepped out of the hidden studio and into his small, but elegant,
living room. The subtle lighting that played off the richly adorned walls was
somehow more revealing than the
utilitarian brightness of his composition room. There were rips in his smudged
clothes that he hadn’t noticed before, and his hands were filthy, rimes of dark
matter beneath his nails. Really, he had to learn to control his enthusiasm;
the syn lara was an instrument capable of great emotional power, but it
was delicately structured—
It had
been a long day; he’d see to the syn lara tomorrow before he started
editing the new program. For now, a shower, a hot meal, and a good night’s
sleep were what he needed most.
“That
and an alibi or two,” he said softly, and grinned, pleased with his newfound
ability to laugh at himself. Belar’s sense of humor had tended toward
nonexistent.
But with Dax ... everything is different
now. Everything is the way it should be. The way it was meant to be.
Three
more notes; after that, Joran Dax wouldn’t need an alibi. After that, those who
surely sought to destroy him would be forced to acknowledge his contribution to
infinity, whether they appreciated its complexities or not. Whatever happened
to him, the composition would inspire beings the universe over to a new
understanding of life.
His
grin widened as he walked toward the bathroom, shaking his head. Three more,
and the quinary would be complete. Assuming he could work unmolested for another
week, two at most, Joran Dax would redefine the meaning of inspiration; the
time was at hand for him to show them all.
* * *
The
park wasn’t anything special, but it was close to home, quiet, and reasonably
flat. Verjyl Gard had always liked to jog, but he’d left steep hills and rugged
terrain behind along with his thirties. Real running was for athletes, for
people interested in physical fitness; for him, mornings in the park were about
sanity and fresh air, about not having to think for a little while unless it
was to decide on what to have for breakfast.
He’d
been imagining something deep-fried until he saw Kov jogging toward him, the
younger man’s carefully blank expression killing Gard’s appetite. No
breakfast today. Gard continued his shagging pace, ignoring the sudden
vague urge to turn and run the other way. It wouldn’t change anything. He could
only pray that it was a standard consultation.
Kov
fell into step beside him, breathing easily. Together, they jogged through the
sun-dappled trees for a full minute without speaking, the silence broken only
by the soft pelt of shoe against path, by distant bird song, and the rush of
blood in his ears. Gard ran through what he remembered from the morning
newscasts, knowing that Kov would wait until he was ready; he always did.
“Is it
the girl?” Gard asked finally. “The student?”
Kov
nodded. “Yeah. We think she’s the second ... the first was two weeks ago, at
the Devritane Museum—”
“—the
shuttle pilot, I remember,” Gard said, sighing inwardly. He couldn’t help
remembering. It was what he did best.
“We
also think ... we have multiple lines here, Gard.”
Gard
felt something tighten inside, but only nodded warily. So much for praying.
They
reached a fork in the path and Gard steered them to the right, knowing they’d
be less likely to run into anyone along the more heavily wooded route. Talking
about murder was bad enough; it was talking about the murderer—apparently, this
murderer—that they needed privacy for.
In all
the centuries of Gard’s life, there had only been a handful who’d known what
the symbiont’s forte was. Even after the impressively complicated screening
process he’d gone through prior to being joined, Verjyl Slest had been
surprised—although very little surprised him anymore.
Murder
was rare on Trill, and only the unjoined killed; that was what he’d believed
before he was joined, what the world still believed. Candidates for joining
were balanced, well-adjusted people; the mentally or emotionally infirm were
weeded out before they even got close to the first interview, and for a joined
Trill to commit murder ... impossible. Unthinkable. Law-enforcement agencies
had never had to deal with such a case.
And
they never will, Verjyl had
quickly realized. Not as long as there’s Gard. ...
Each
joining created uniqueness, the fruition of the host’s potential combined with
the symbiont’s. According to the Symbiosis Commission, an unsuitable host would
reject his or her symbiont in a matter of days; it happened, but rarely. But even more uncommon was the
symbiosis that birthed a monster; a darkness within the host brought into the
foreground, a creature that was the direct consequence of joining.
Gard
understood anomalies; the Gard symbiont was one of a kind, old enough to have
forgotten how it came to be what it was.
But
not to forget what I’m here to do. Never.
Gard’s
hosts had all trained extensively to prepare for such instances—and there had
been only four. Four monsters; combined, they’d killed thirty-seven people and
destroyed the lives of countless more. Two of the four had committed suicide,
perhaps the symbiont exerting its last shred of control; one had been killed
trying to escape the authorities, back when the authorities still enforced the
law with sticks and stones—and the fourth had been executed by the soldier
Kirista Gard, some 90 years past. ...
... its
gaze, as bleak and cold and desolate as deepest, blackest winter, its lips
curled with hatred, the slick intelligence behind its mask of flesh ...
Gard
slowed to a walk, breathing raggedly, a little shaken by the sudden intensity
of Kirista’s memory. Kov stopped and watched him, and Gard was surprised to
note that the young op seemed worn out, his face flushed. In the eight years
that Kov had been his go-between to the Symbiosis Commission, Gard had never
known him to work up much of a sweat over anything.
We’re
all getting old. Old and tired.
“Let’s
walk for a while,” Gard said, smiling a little at the obvious relief that
flitted across Kov’s face. “In fact, why don’t you fill me in on the way back
to your transport?”
They
both smiled, and Gard did his best to enjoy it; odds were, the days to come
would bring very little to be happy about.
The
outdoor cafe St’asla sat at the edge of the campus common, fitted with
all the pretensions and posturing that only a student-run cafe could manage.
Today it was more crowded than usual, the Tenaran Music Academy’s best and
brightest indulged in a frenzy of table-hopping, the late afternoon air filled
with their mindless buzzing. The discovery of Mehta Bren’s body was undoubtedly
the most exciting thing to have happened in quite some time.
An
impromptu concert had broken out on the carefully manicured lawn across from
where Joran sat, a memorial for the slain flautist. The musicians—two young
women laboring over the strings of an Astian bitanle and a joined
professor, a not-so-accomplished dulcimer player—had chosen an over-used
mourning piece, the unapologetically maudlin Dal’s Requiem Trio, and had
drawn a rather large group of listeners.
Joran
watched the crowd, wondering at the tear-streaked faces and slumped shoulders
as he sipped at his wine. Mehta’s talents had been unremarkable, to say the
least, and he knew for a fact that she’d had few friends; the false sentiment
was distasteful to him. What was it about death that brought out such
hypocrisy? People who’d never met her were suddenly overwhelmed with emotion,
remembering the girl’s genius, fondly spinning tales of her great wit and
beauty, imagining that they knew her. The truth was, he was closer to her than
any of them. Unlike the assembled faithless, her death actually meant something
to him; musically, the first-year student would accomplish far more by her
passing than she ever could have managed had she continued to practice—
Joran’s
thoughts were cut short as the musicians began a new piece, the soft opening
strains of T’saln’s Cicadian Suite No. 9 floating across the lawn like a
haunted breeze. Joran closed his eyes, frowning, soothed and troubled at once;
it had been one of his favorite compositions when he’d still been Joran Belar,
written by a Vulcan woman well before Dax’s first implantation. The simple
repeating melody of the piece was built upon by graceful, willowy harmonies
that grew more complex with each repetition, the notes flowing into one another,
becoming, reaching ...
Belar’s first year at the Academy, so
arrogant, so sure of himself—young, bright, a full scholarship handed to
him when his older brother had been forced to seek patronage from the Arts
Board. Called to play his best work by the instructor of Advanced
Interpretation, the first class of his first day, and choosing No. 9. Executing
it flawlessly in front of his “peers,” knowing how good it was, turning to
accept their envy and admiration as the last notes spiraled away into silence—
Dr. Silvet nodding, smiling, her tone
gentle, her words brutal, impossible to forget. “An ambitious choice, Mr.
Belar, and technically perfect ... but did you feel anything?”
She addressed the class, turning his shame
into a lesson for all. “Notes can be mastered by anyone; that is the craft of
music. But the art ... you must learn to find the immortal that exists
in each piece, the continuity of the eternal that elevates a series of notes
into something more—and to recognize it, you must feel it. If you can’t
find your place within the living cycle that is music, if you can’t learn
humility in the face of the eternal, than you can never hope for better than
technical mastery.”
The living cycle. The face of the eternal.
The birth and rebirth, the joining, the perfect circle, the five—
—applause,
and Joran blinked, startled from his thoughts. The trio of musicians were
bowing humbly, accepting praise for their amateur efforts from the gathered
listeners, even those seated at the cafe. Joran closed his eyes again,
irritated with the obvious sincerity of the crowd; hadn’t they heard the
fumbled notes? Was he the only one who’d perceived the mawkish execution of the
secondary interlude, largo that had been written as andante? Pathetic,
just as Mehta had been in the end, absolutely—
“Tragic,
isn’t it?”
Joran
looked up to see a young woman standing by his table, her dark gaze fixed on
the musicians as they put away their instruments. He wasn’t particularly
interested in gossiping about the deceased, but it wouldn’t do to seem too uninterested.
As it was, he was taking a risk; he had a recital in a few days, and hadn’t
planned to be seen on campus before then. He applied a sorrowful expression,
aware that his whim could cost him if he wasn’t careful.
“Yes. I
heard she had great potential ... such a waste.”
The
woman arched an eyebrow. “Actually, I meant the performance,” she said lightly,
still watching the players. “I think we were the only ones not clapping. ...”
She
looked down at him when he didn’t respond immediately, smiling nervously. “I’m
sorry, you’re right, of course—I just thought they weren’t very good, but I
didn’t mean—”
Joran
smiled back at her, unable to resist. “Don’t be sorry. I agree, they weren’t up
to it. ... Although not many are.”
She
lifted her chin, and somehow then spoke without a trace of conceit. “I am.”
He felt
a flutter of amazement at her brashness, and though he knew he should let the
conversation drop, that he shouldn’t be seen talking to anyone here about
anything, he suddenly realized that he would deeply regret not learning more
about her.
He
motioned at the chair beside his, letting the charm into his smile. “I’m Joran
Dax, I used to be a student here. Please ...”
“Temzia
Nirenn,” she said as she sat down, “and I’m still a student here, but I’m
starting to wonder if it’s worth the effort. I mean, are they going to teach me
anything new, or is it going to be the same old tune about examining my
feelings and becoming the instrument of true art?”
Joran
laughed out loud, enchanted—and as they slipped easily into a conversation that
delighted them both as afternoon
deepened toward dusk, Joran found himself feeling more than amazement at the
intensity and passion of the young woman.
It
wasn’t until much later that he realized it was fear.
Mehta
Bren could have been sleeping, curled beneath the bright lights of the lab in
the sterile cold, her delicate features unmarred by the violence that had taken
her life. With the table’s stasis field deactivated, the illusion was quickly
lost; the slender hole in her abdomen began to seep, and even as Gard gazed
down at her, he imagined that he could see the last blush of life drain away,
the lines of her face settling into permanence.
Sorrow,
anger, despair. Gard watched her until he felt nothing but curiosity and the
small measure of guilt that came with the shift of emotion. As with the pilot
from two weeks before, the murder weapon had been a sh’uk, an antique;
it had been nearly three centuries since Trill authorities had used the
needle-shaped tool for executions, a quick and relatively painless death in a
time when death had still been crime’s answer.
Neither quick nor painless for her, for
either of them ...
There
was no evidence of torture, but in both cases, selected vertebrae had been
broken, effectively paralyzing the victims prior to their deaths—the forensics
teams had estimated twenty minutes to an hour on both victims, long enough for
the killer to ... to do something, something he wanted his victims to
witness or experience.
The
pilot, one Jelim Niecta, had already been immolated in keeping with his family’s wishes, but the body’s condition
had been extensively documented; Gard had studied the files in the flyer on
their way over the Ganses Peninsula, returning again and again to what little
the Devritane Museum’s surveillance camera had gathered from the night of the
murder. A dark shape in a darker hallway, nothing established except that the
killer was humanoid. Still, Gard had watched obsessively, memorizing the smudge
of blackness. If Kov had been bored by the repetition, he’d had the tact not to
say so.
Two
murders with a sh’uk, no witnesses, no apparent motive or connection
between the victims except that neither had been joined. Gard knew that was
important, but that he wouldn’t know why until he had a chance to investigate
further—and that the killer would give them very little to investigate. In his
experience, joined murderers were exceptionally careful about what they decided
to reveal.
Multiple
lines ... the suggestion of past-host influence that had flagged the crimes was
unmistakable, and it was the best chance they’d have to catch the killer. No
matter how clever the current host, there were some things that he or she
wouldn’t recognize as intimations of self, wouldn’t know to avoid. Gard had
been called in to analyze the traces, to build a history for the monster, and
he could only hope to finish and apply his work before it killed again.
Mehta
Bren. What a pretty name. A pretty
girl. To see life ripped away from one so young. ... There was something inside
of him that ran deeper than emotion, that accepted the reality of her death and
used it to create a kind of need—for justice, for a return of balance to his
own life and the lives of his kind. It was self-manipulation perhaps, a trick—
—but
I won’t rest until I find who did this to you, he thought, staring into the
face of a girl who could no longer care on her own behalf. Mehta ...
“Forensics
has a reconstruction on her,” Kov said softly, and Gard finally looked up from
the near-sleeping child. The op stood by the door, arms folded, his expression
as impenetrable as usual. Gard liked Kov; what others perceived as unfeeling in
the young agent, Gard knew to be professional detachment. He’d been around long
enough to recognize the pain that Kov buried, the tightness around the eyes and
mouth that spoke of learning how to avoid certain thoughts on nights when sleep
wouldn’t come.
It took
one to know one, or so he’d heard. He nodded, motioning for the lab attendant
to take care of Mehta before joining Kov. Together, the two men walked down the
well-scrubbed corridor of the TSC’s regional science facility, Gard reflecting
absently on the progress of technology. The first time he’d tracked a joined
Trill, there had been no such thing as harnessed electricity. But then, there’d
been no such thing as criminal psychology, either; Trill had believed that the
Butcher of Balin had been possessed by evil spirits. Considering his crimes,
perhaps they hadn’t been so far off the mark.
“You
ever seen one of these?” Kov asked, as they stepped into yet another of the
laboratories that made up the facility, a dimly lit room dominated by a
holotank in the center. Gard shook his head, taking in their new surroundings.
The walls were lined with banks of softly blinking lights and various
key-panels, monitored by a rather nervous-looking male tech. He knew of them,
of course; using all of the information that the forensics teams could gather,
the reconstruction program would show the most likely sequence of events
leading up to Mehta’s death; Gard doubted it would be much, but it was worth a
look.
“Run
it,” Kov said simply, and the tech started pressing buttons. Gard fixed his
attention on the tank, watching as a small set of rooms flickered into view—a
student’s apartment, decorated neatly but cheaply. The sight of the inexpensive
wall-hangings and fresh flowers wilting in a chipped water glass by the front
door made Gard clench his jaw. Her first apartment.
A
featureless humanoid appeared in the living room, and seemed to be pacing
aimlessly, walking in circles. Although there was a slight possibility that the
killer was a tall female, Gard allowed his intuition to decide for him: a man.
The unknown male carried a sh’uk and wore a dark gray tunic; after a moment
of restless agitation, he moved across the room to stand behind the girl’s
desk.
Want to be in the shadows, hiding, waiting.
What’s on the desk? Pacing ... nerves? Excitement? When will she come home?
A part
of Gard’s mind was formulating lists as he watched—males implanted in the last
year, Academy students, museum patrons, collectors of weaponry ... friends of
Mehta’s? A lover? The lock hadn’t been forced, although someone could have
stolen the override entry code easily enough. ...
The
door opened again and Mehta Bren entered, a shopping bag balanced on one hip.
She dropped her key card next to the makeshift vase, calling for lights as the
door closed behind her—
—and
the killer sprang, across the room in a flash. Mehta dropped the bag, various
purchases flying, a container of soup splashing everywhere as she fumbled for
the door—
—and it
was too late. Gard watched the ensuing struggle, determined not to feel what
was welling up inside as Mehta fought her attacker, as she fought for her life.
The forensic interpretation was graphic if not bloody, the expression of terror
on the girl’s face painful to see—but as he watched, his experience pointed out
a flaw that nullified the program’s effect.
That’s not right. He wouldn’t have—wrong,
they have it all wrong.
Gard
let it play to its inevitable conclusion before thanking the tech and with Kov,
retreating to the hallway; he saw no reason to be rude, and the program might
be valuable in other circumstances.
“Worthless,”
he said, and was pleased that Kov didn’t seem surprised. “The time that he took
to disable her, his actions before and after the crime—it was carefully
planned, not some bloody rampage. Just like the pilot.”
“So
what next?” Kov asked.
“We go
to Mehta’s apartment, and see if we can figure out what really happened.”
* * *
They’d
played for hours, their spontaneous harmonies forming a sensual tension between
them that only grew as their music progressed. Temzia did not have a piano or syn
lara, but Joran had some skill with the instruments she did keep—the Vulcan
lute, a li’dswed, a Tellarite hollow bell line. He tried all three while
Temzia played a cello, an Earth string instrument that produced deep, rich
sounds. It made him think of polished stone and age, of wealth and oceans; it
was almost as beautiful as she.
For
long periods, he thought of nothing at all, simply reveling in the sounds they
created, lost in the joy that filled her rooms. With each pause, however, he
felt the fear return. It simply wasn’t possible—that this incredible, passionate,
talented musician, as sure of her brilliance as he was of his own—that she was
alone. Unjoined.
The
music ended, finally, and they talked into the early morning hours, curled
together on the thick carpet of her living room. There was no question that the
attraction was mutual, but Joran found himself resisting, dodging Temzia’s
attempts to touch him. At last she sighed, leaning back against her couch and
studying him, a playful scowl dancing across her lips.
“What
is it?” She asked. “You are interested. ...”
It
wasn’t a question; already she could read him, and it added to his fear. The
circle, the eternal—becoming joined to Dax had been the key, unlocking his true
understanding to music, to himself as an artist and as a being. Without Dax,
there had been no focus. How could
this girl—this child—have achieved such clarity of purpose without a symbiont?
She was
waiting. “I’m—my last serious relationship ended badly,” he said. Not really a
lie, considering his last relationship had been as Torias Dax, who’d left his
wife a widow. He clamped down on the thought, not letting it go any further; he
didn’t like remembering the others. Not any of them.
Temzia
smiled. “That’s your past. I’m your present.”
No
hesitation, no question. He stared at her, the fear making him uncertain. “It’s
all connected. ...”
She
shrugged, throwing away his beliefs in that single, uncomplicated motion. “I
know the joined believe that, but I don’t agree. How can you deny yourself what
is here, now? What does this moment mean if you spend it remembering another,
or planning the next?”
For a
beat, Joran had no answer. “You’re saying we shouldn’t deny our true natures
... ?”
Temzia
nodded slowly, and in that moment, she was the teacher, a truth greater than
the circle, the connection between the infinite and the need—it wasn’t enough
to understand the concept, he wanted to feel it, to touch her and know
more.
They
kissed, and for a little while there was silence, and it was sweeter than any
music he’d ever known.
They
stood in the wreck that had been Mehta’s apartment, the same as the final image
from the holographic recreation. What the program had been unable to include
were the smells of dead flowers and spilled soup, the quality of sluggish shadow, the flush of violence that still
tinged the air like some half remembered dream—in effect, the reality of
murder. There was nothing else like it.
While
Kov tampered with the police holoprojector mounted in the northeast corner of
the room, Gard checked out the student’s desk. He stood in the same place the
killer had waited, breathing deeply, letting himself know what the killer had
known.
It was dark, and she would be home soon ...
anticipation building, the sh’uk warm, watching the door open and ...
Gard
frowned. Why here? It was the murderer’s luck that she hadn’t escaped while
he’d been dashing across the room. He looked down at the desk, at the blank
screen of her personal computer, at the scattered mass of Academy disks—music,
history, composition—at a framed holo of a younger Mehta proudly holding what
appeared to be an alien flute, the front cracked, distorting her smile into a
toothy scream.
Gard
felt they were looking at three distinct sets of memories so far, although he
suspected more. At the museum: planned for privacy, timed to avoid security,
and a careful adjustment to the lighting prior to the attack, but the
recklessness of allowing himself to be caught on camera. At both sites, the
humidity filters had been reset, possibly in consideration to the indoor plant
life—in Mehta’s bathroom, a dying fern had been lovingly trimmed and watered
after her death. The killer had chosen an antiquated weapon for both murders,
unused for centuries, yet in both cases had taken great care not to use the
weapon as intended, paralyzing his victims first—
—a perfectionist, consumed by details,
suggesting a background in mathematics or engineering, perhaps some kind of
artistic connection. An interest in botany. A historian, or someone with an
interest in capital punishment. So many possibilities—
A flicker
of light diverted his attention; Kov had the projector working. The image of
Mehta’s body as she had been found appeared on the floor, halfway between the
desk and the front door. Her face was turned toward Gard, and like the shuttle
pilot, her limbs had been arranged to denote rest, her eyes closed and head
tilted as if she were listening to something. ...
“Was
there music playing?” Gard asked.
Kov
shook his head. “Nothing was loaded—unless you count a misfed data ring. The
reads taken indicated that her computer was on at the time of death, but it was
a glitch.”
“How
can you be sure?”
Kov
pulled a notepad from inside his coat and tapped a few keys. “According to the
memory log, a single tone was produced by the sound card for something like an
hour—didn’t change in pitch or volume, and there was no evidence that the
attacker tried to access anything. Malfunction.”
Gard
frowned. “And it was still playing when they found her?”
“Actually,
no ...” Now Kov was frowning. He walked across the room, Gard noting that he
stepped carefully around the image of the body almost without thinking about
it. Kov leaned over the computer and started punching in commands.
After a
moment, a low sound spilled out into the silence from the dead girl’s computer,
a single unvarying note, flat and tuneless. Gard closed his eyes, listening,
but it reminded him of nothing.
“Malfunction,”
Kov said again.
“I
doubt it.” Gard saw Kov move to turn it off, and shook his head. “Let it play.
Anything like this at the museum?”
“I
don’t ... They checked for tampering with files, but nothing else. It’s
possible. I’ll find out as soon as we get back to the facility.”
As Kov
spoke, Gard moved to the still image on the floor, letting his thoughts carry
him. He crouched next to the body, then lay down in the projection of light,
merging with her, assuming the same position. He closed his eyes again, letting
the monotonous note fill his mind, hearing what Mehta heard as she died. What
the killer heard as he took her life.
A single note, he wanted her to hear it ...
or wanted it to be playing so that he could hear it, so that he could
connect the sound with the memory of her death. ...
Gard
opened his eyes and without moving, studied as much of the room as he could
see, paying close attention to the wall behind the desk. Once he knew what he
was looking for, he found it in a matter of seconds: three tiny holes set in a
triangular pattern, high in the room’s southwest corner. If he were to remove
the police holo projector’s mount, he would find the same pattern.
Gard
sat up and ran his hands through his hair, his sudden certainty making him feel
very tired. There was no question in his mind that one of the museum’s
computers had also suffered an aural “glitch,” or that whoever checked the
scene would find an identical trio of holes somewhere in the room.
“He’s
recording them,” Gard said softly. He had to repeat himself to be heard over
the unchanging note, the sound clogging his senses with echoes of a madness he
was only beginning to understand.
Things
weren’t happening the way he’d planned. The quinary circle wasn’t half
finished, the perfection incomplete—and since meeting Temzia, the need to
conclude had ceased to dominate his every waking thought. He knew he had to
finish, knew that someone would be coming. ...
... stop.
Breathe. Now is not the time.
“...
without further ado, I present our friend and colleague, Joran Dax. Mr. Dax
will be playing an original composition for us, a symphonic ode, Unfitted,
To a Truth.”
Joran
stood up, smiling and nodding to the assembled group of teachers and graduate
students as he walked to the raised platform, trying to clear his mind of
everything but the music. The quarterly recitals were tiresome but necessary if
he meant to maintain his status as one of the Academy’s finest; he’d seriously
considered skipping this one. Temzia had almost coaxed him to spend the day
with her—but now was not the time to draw attention to himself.
And why not? Why not, when your grand
composition lays untouched, when you allow doubt to cloud your brilliance, to
keep you from action? Why not quit now, retire into obscurity with an unjoined
as your playmate, leave the important work to those with the strength to follow
through—
Enough!
Joran
humbly thanked the woman who’d introduced him, an aging spinster of little
talent, and moved to the piano, an antique Steinway imported from Earth. It was
time to play, the one thing that could still soothe away his troubles.
He sat
at the bench, closing his eyes to fix the piece in his mind’s eye. It was one
of Belar’s, simple but dulcet, not his best work but easily better than the
insipid noise his audience was accustomed to hearing. He could worry about the
circle later.
Joran
began to play, the gentle lines of the ode working their magic. From the first
stanza, he ceased to exist, becoming the spaces between the notes, becoming
each delicate, ringing sound, the eternal inside of him finding a place to
rest. The melody was uncluttered by fear or indecision, there was no morality
to be concerned with; it was what it was, and it was good.
There
was some movement in the audience as he played, but he recognized it as if from
a great distance, entranced by the miracle that was music, that he was blessed
to share in. Still, a part of him wondered how anyone could be so rude, to
detract from the others’ experience. At the calando bridge, he glanced across
the small assembly—
—and
lost his place, the timing horribly jumbled, three notes in a row buried. Dr.
Hajan, here, now! There was no mistaking the stern countenance, the faded spots
of his hateful, white head—the disapproving gaze of the man who’d recommended
that Joran Belar be expelled from the initiate program.
After
his joining, he’d been told that it wasn’t uncommon for evaluating staff to
visit, unannounced, those they’d recommended be dropped—it was even encouraged
by the Commission, the idea being for the doctor or field docent to witness the
success of the joining they’d discouraged, to lay to rest any lingering doubts.
Dr.
Hajan’s timing couldn’t have been worse. Not now, not with so many
unanswered questions, so many doubts of my own!
Except
... poor timing was a matter of perspective, wasn’t it?
All of
this flashed through his mind in a split second, before his shock was replaced
with a renewed sense of purpose. He had been weak, he had almost lost his
connection to the circle, but in that instant of awareness, he saw what had to
happen next—and it filled him with pleasure, almost physical in its intensity.
Joran
regained his composure and finished the piece without another flaw.
The
call came just after dark—a third murder, this one committed within the very
walls of the Symbiosis Commission, not an hour’s flight from where Gard was
staying. The details were few, but gave Gard his first real hope that the hunt
might soon be over; the killer had been interrupted at his work by security,
fleeing the victim’s office before he’d had a chance to complete his ritual.
The guards had lost him outside, but Gard’s hope was undiminished; he could
feel how close they were to understanding him—and understanding inevitably led
to capture.
Kov
picked him up and they rode in near silence to the Institute, a steady drizzle
raining down on them from the gathering night that did little to dampen their
guilty optimism. Earlier, they’d received confirmation on the museum slaying
connections, the holoprojector marks and the single tone—a different pitch, but
doubtlessly for the same as-yet unknown purpose—and now a third murder, less
than two hours old, the site secured and waiting for them. The victim was one
Dr. Foris Hajan, a senior member of the Institute’s evaluation team, and a TSC
tech was already compiling a list of his recent recommendations, as well as an
itinerary for the past few months. Gard had little doubt that the killer’s name
would surface—but Gard had no doubts either that the murderer had accelerated
his spree, and that they needed to find him as quickly as possible.
Dr.
Hajan’s office was in the Institute’s west wing. Kov and Gard hurried through
the dimly lit hallways, past ashen-faced guards and the few staff members who’d
still been working, who lingered now in aimless confusion. As they neared
Hajan’s office, Gard heard the sound he’d been searching for—the flat,
featureless tone that they now knew as the killer’s signature. Apparently, he hadn’t had time to silence his
strange obsession.
Kov
stopped at the door to talk to one of the techs while Gard stepped into the
nightmarish scene that had been Hajan’s last. Chairs and bookcases had been
overturned, various ceramic pieces shattered, the debris cast randomly
about—and in the middle of the room, eyes open and staring, lay Dr. Hajan
himself, a single stab wound through his throat. Above it all, the relentless
drone from the undamaged computer played like some endless mechanical shriek,
somehow all the more terrible for its utter lack of emotion.
Gard
knelt next to the body, assessing the attack. Hajan had been surprised, surely,
the entrance to the wound at the back of his neck, a change in pattern that
suggested a different relationship. The killer hadn’t wanted for Hajan to see
him, had perhaps wanted to avoid the condemnation in his eyes—
—couldn’t bear to be seen, but wanted Hajan
dead so badly that he didn’t care whether or not the doctor’s death could be
connected to him. Whatever he’s trying to do, he means to finish it soon.
...
“Here
it is.”
Gard
stood up and saw that Kov had joined him, and was pointing at a triad of marks
on the far wall. Even rushed, the murderer had been determined to take his
trophy, to have his prize. Gard nodded thoughtfully as he moved to the
still-crying computer, his trained mind working at the details, fitting them
and refitting them; the ancient weapon, the recordings, the seemingly random
destruction, the obviously obsessive nature—there were contradictions everywhere, but only because he didn’t
fully understand.
“It’s
not the same note,” Kov said. “It’s—higher, I think, than either of the other
ones. We’ll have to feed them into the computer when we get back, see if we can
find the connection.”
Gard
shook his head. He could feel time slipping away, and the need to know was
like a fire in his mind. “Do it now, here. Do you have the specs?”
Kov
barely hesitated before nodding. He produced his notepad and picked up an overturned
chair, sitting in front of the computer as Gard walked back across the ravaged
office, talking almost to himself.
“No one
uses the sh’uk, no one. Executions, goal-oriented, not process, but he
records the process, he breaks everything in sight but it’s not real, it’s like
he’s deliberately ...”
Gard
froze.
Lying.
Creating a false biography.
It all
fell into place, and Gard ran through the lies one at a time, discovering the
reality at the base of each.
The
murder weapon, so appealing because it’s so rare, so emotionless ... a blind alley, and a disguise for his
true rage. The special care given to the plants ... a detail he wanted
us to notice, because he’s not a noted botanist. The murder sites,
seemingly the work of a clumsy, rampaging beast ... a dancer instead, or
an athlete, someone capable of precise movement.
And
why, why invent a false background of hosts to mislead ... unless you knew that
someone would be investigating a joined murderer, which you could not know—
—unless you served on the Commission at some
point.
As if
to punctuate the enormity of his realization, the room fell silent, the note
snapping off. Kov stared at the screen, seemingly awestruck.
Gard
hurried over, already knowing the nature of what he would see if not the
specifics.
Connection, completion. It’s about
completion, somehow. ...
“They’re
notes,” Kov said softly. “The first three of a pentatonic scale, five tones in
all.”
There,
on the screen—five dots, three of them highlighted. The computer had arranged
them in a circle.
“Ouroboros,”
Gard breathed. Kov looked up at him, frowning. Gard elaborated, feeling his
heart pound with the truth of it.
“A
human myth. The serpent that devours its own tail. It symbolizes the cycle of
change and continuance, of past and future, united. Think of it—a joined
killer, experiencing himself as the rebirth of his symbiont, creating death as
he is born.”
Gard
grinned, and not a trace of humor lived in his smile.
They
had him.
It was
almost midnight when Temzia let herself into Joran’s apartment, excited by the
feeling of daring that flushed through her as she punched his entry code into
the door panel. He hadn’t exactly tried to keep it to himself, had he? Besides,
she had waited over a cooling meal for hours; he’d promised to meet her after
his recital, and she was
unaccustomed to being denied. If she interrupted him in the middle of something
private, well, it was his own fault, wasn’t it?
The
rooms were dark, the only sound that of the pattering rain at the windows.
Enjoying the thrill of her intrusion, she let the lights stay off, moving as
quietly as a thief. There was a little light coming from the wide, unshuttered
window in his living room, the thin and watery moonlight adding to her sense of
stealthy purpose.
She
circled through his bedroom, bathroom, and kitchen, returning to the tastefully
decorated living room when she realized that he wasn’t home. Disappointing,
to say the least. Stay or go? She decided to stay, at least until she got
bored. Joran was worth it.
The
environment was elegant, if a trifle cold; Temzia wandered through the room,
studying his collection of instruments, peering at his wall of antique
instruments and lightly touching the paintings and prints that he’d collected,
probably as Joran Belar. It was strange, being with a joined man; no one in her
immediate family had been implanted, and most of her friends were musicians,
far from the math-science types who usually sought candidacy. She liked it; she
liked him, and as she ran a nimble finger across a row of hard-copy
texts, she found herself wondering what it would be like to be in love with Mr.
Joran Dax—
“Oh!”
The sound was startled out of her as the line of the shelf jumped into her hand
with a soft click. She grinned, at her own surprise as much as at what
she’d found.
“Secrets,”
she whispered, still grinning. A secret room. Maybe he kept his mistresses
there, hidden away from prying eyes. Joran would laugh at that when she told
him. ...
Temzia
slipped into the room, her gaze adjusted enough to the dark to see the syn
lara that dominated the otherwise empty chamber. A work room, obviously—no
decorations, nothing to distract a composing musician. She loved that he was so
dedicated to his music; she’d never met anyone as impassioned as Joran, or as
talented.
He probably wouldn’t like me nosing around
in here. ...
Her
grin returned. He probably shouldn’t stand her up, then.
She
walked to the syn lara and perched on one corner of the bench, her gaze
running over the use-polished keys. She saw the control box for a holo
projector sitting on the raised lip of the instrument and, still smiling,
turned it on. Probably scenes of nature, or some such, one of her profs had
recommended using visuals for inspiration, and—
—and
her smile faded as part of a chord filtered from the projector’s speakers, and
two images sprang to life, both dramatically bright in the darkness. Two rooms,
other than these; two strangers, a man in an empty hall, a girl holding a bag,
both turning toward her, twin expressions of shock on their faces. Both of them
screaming wordlessly, the haunting notes erupting from their opened mouths as
Joran stepped into their rooms, Joran holding something shining and sharp—
Temzia
sucked in a breath and scrambled backward, falling off of the bench, unable to
look away from the horror unfolding in front of her. Oh, oh, that’s Mehta,
that’s Mehta Bren and he’s, what is he doing—
She
backed into the living room, stumbling, scarcely able to breathe—
—and a
hand clamped over her mouth, stifling the scream that leapt into her throat.
She struggled wildly, but only for the second it took her to see the weapon
held up in front of her rolling eyes.
Gard
could feel the girl’s rising panic in the flutter of her heart, in the tension
that ran through her body and made it tremble against his own.
“Where’s
Dax?” He whispered against
her ear. The girl shuddered violently, her breath coming in hot gusts against
his fingers, her limbs twitching. She was too afraid, he had to calm her down
or she’d start screaming the second he let her go.
“Listen
to me,” he whispered, doing his best to sound reassuring, aware that Joran
could be moving toward them now, sliding through the dark with a weapon of his
own, something much deadlier than a stunner. “You’re in very real danger, and
I’m here to help, but you have to tell me where he is.”
The
girl seemed to understand. She nodded against his hand and he let her go,
quickly scanning the room as she collected herself enough to respond.
“I
don’t think he’s here,” she said, her eyes wide and bright with tears. “I
didn’t—”
Across
from them, an explosion, a black shape hurtling through the window with a
thundering crash, the high squeak of splintering glass an assault in the
whispered dark. Gard threw himself to the floor, pulling the girl down with him,
doing his best to shield her from the rain of glass as the shape, Dax, fell
across them both.
Gard
tried to bring the stunner up and a sharp pain slashed across his wrist.
Instantly, his fingers turned dumb, the weapon clattering away. Joran held a
thick, daggerlike piece of glass in one bloody hand, as shining as the demented
grin he wore.
“Nice
work. Fast. Now you and the girl, and it’s all over,” Dax said, and slashed
again with the glass. Gard reeled back, narrowly avoiding the cut, praying that
Kov had heard, was coming, praying that the girl would survive.
Screaming
wordlessly, Dax lunged forward, striking at Gard’s throat—
—and
the scream was cut short by the solid thunk of blunt instrument against
skull. Dax crumpled forward, the girl standing behind him, the sharp end of his
dropped sh’uk grasped in both of her hands.
“No!”
Gard snatched at the monster, desperate to save him, to finally have the
answers to the questions that he’d spent centuries following, why—
—as Dax
fell against his own makeshift dagger, the weight of his body forcing the glass
deep into his chest.
Gasping,
Joran Dax rolled onto his back, resuscitated by the pain of his impalement.
Dying.
The
pain was everything. It was the world, and just like that, Joran felt something
inside of him break.
Don’t
leave me, Dax ...
“The
circle’s not finished,” Joran rasped, not sure who he was talking to, not
expecting an answer from the agent who’d orchestrated his death.
“It is
for you.”
Temzia
was crying, somewhere. Joran couldn’t see.
“I ...
still am ... Dax,” he whispered, and knew that it was true, that the circle was
the truth. Never ending. Dax was alive, and he was part of Dax now, in
harmony with the symbiont, forever.
That
cool voice, from out of the dark. “No. You’re Joran Belar, and you’re dead, and
no one will remember.”
Joran
felt a burst of fear, of terror, and it was the last thing he felt, the foul
eulogy from the stranger the last sound he heard as the dark joined around him,
taking him away from the eternal and into silence.
Gard
wasn’t in the mood to jog but he went to the park anyway; the sun was out, and
although he was tired, the light felt good. Cleansing.
He
wasn’t a bit surprised to see Kov waiting for him by the path, even though the
agent probably hadn’t slept yet. Gard had had only a few hours himself, but he
felt okay.
The
younger man fell into step, and together, they walked slowly toward the woods.
“How’s
the wrist?” Kov asked.
Gard
smiled. “Good as new. My fingers are a little numb still, but it should pass in
a couple of days. Is that why you came to visit me?”
Kov
smiled in turn, staring off into the distance as he spoke. “The procedure was
successful; the new host has no memory of Joran. I thought you might like to
know.”
“What
about the records?”
“There
never was a Joran Dax. Joran Belar was killed yesterday while trying to escape
the scene of a murder—”
“The
murder of Dr. Hajan,” Gard finished. “Because Hajan recommended his expulsion
from the program.”
Kov
smiled a little, but said nothing.
“What
about the pilot? What about Mehta?”
Kov
shrugged. “There’ll be questions for a while, but in the long run ...”
He
didn’t need to finish. The TSC was all about handling the long run; Gard knew
that as well as anyone. Better than most, in fact.
They
walked for a few moments without speaking, and Gard decided that it was too
nice a day for the discussion that could have been sparked by the events of the
past few weeks, particularly of the past few hours. About what the TSC was
doing, and the apparent lack of feeling they had for the unjoined. About who
they were helping by refusing to admit to the world that sometimes, even after
all of their careful measuring and planning, things went wrong; the need for
Gard’s existence was proof of that.
But there’s only one of me. Maybe that’s
it’s own proof, that things are never as dark as they seem. Maybe.
“What’s
the new host’s name?” He asked suddenly, not sure why he wanted to know.
“Curzon,”
Kov said. “He’s going to be a diplomat.”
For
some reason, that made Gard laugh out loud. The two men continued their walk,
enjoying the quiet, the park seeming fresh and new as it always did after a
storm. Gard knew that he would remember Joran Dax, even if no one else
would—and perhaps that was as much a reason for his existence as the rest of it.
After a
few moments, Kov left him without saying good-bye; he never did.
“I think one of the reasons I
liked him so much was that he had more faults than the usual, socially
acceptable Trill.”
—Benjamin Sisko
“Dax”
Steven Barnes is a novelist, screenwriter, columnist,
lecturer, and personal performance coach. He has written fifteen novels,
including several in collaboration with award-winning science fiction writer
Larry Niven. His television credits include The Outer Limits, The New
Twilight Zone, Baywatch, and Stargate; his Emmy Award-winning
episode of The Outer Limits, “A Stitch in Time,” was also nominated for
a Cable ACE Award. For five years he was a columnist for Black Belt magazine,
and for three years host of the Hour 25 radio show on KPFK in Los
Angeles. For six years he was one of the most popular instructors at the
prestigious UCLA Extension writing program.
Barnes created the acclaimed Lifewriting
seminar and audio course to help writers at all levels improve both their
writing and their lives by examining Joseph Campbell’s model of the Hero’s
Journey. Visit his Web site at www.lifewrite.com.
He can be reached at [email protected].
“The Music Between the Notes” marks Barnes’s
second foray into the Star Trek universe. His previous project was the
novelization of the acclaimed Star Trek: Deep Space Nine episode “Far
Beyond the Stars.”
Barnes lives in Longview, Washington, with his
daughter and his wife, novelist Tananarive Due.
Steven Barnes
THE
AZZIZ SHIP approached Pelios Station like a great, glowing diatom, a
crystalline testament to a technology long rumored, but rarely seen in
Federation space.
The
shape was unmistakably organic, like something found in the depths of an ocean.
It most resembled what it truly was: a construct extruded, not constructed.
Grown, not built.
I was
an ensign then, not yet graduated from the Academy, and adjunct to the great
Curzon Dax, who stood beside me. I say great with the accuracy of memory,
although that and other words ran through my mind at the time. Some of them
were oddly contradictory: aged and ageless, pompous and frivolous, brilliant
and oblivious.
My
thoughts of him ran to dualisms, perhaps in part because of his symbiotic
nature, which I admit confused and perhaps even repelled me at first.
At the
moment we both stood at the greeting dock of the Federation’s Pelios Station, a
diplomatic and defensive satellite in the Pelian system, a double-star cluster
home to several mining colonies and the planet Bactrica, a world friendly to
the Federation but not yet within her fold. Bactrica, with just over two
million arable square kilometers and a population of forty million souls, was
governed by a hereditary theocracy.
A world
of beauty, grace and wealth, four times within recent history Bactrica had been
invaded by a mysterious people called the Tzenkethi, who in later years would
launch a brief but bloody war against the Federation. Three times Bactrica had
repulsed the Tzenkethi by her own efforts, and a unique energy-weapon
technology. The most recent invasion had required Federation intercession.
During it, Bactrica’s reigning monarchs had died. The line of succession was clear,
there was no crisis of leadership, but the Bactricans had finally decided that
there was strength in numbers.
They
were a species very similar to Asiatic humans in appearance, with a stolid,
mildly androgynous grace of motion. The females were a bit shorter, but that
was very nearly the only visible difference.
Our
presence was officially neutral but de facto protective. Despite her recent
near-disaster, Bactrica took the official position that her spiritual nature
protected her from the need for membership in what they considered a
militaristic Federation.
Privately,
I thought this nonsense. The energy weapons were hardly spiritual. Although we
had never obtained a sample, our analysts proposed that it actually disrupted
matter in its most basic, sub-quark level, producing an effect our own
theorists had considered to violate at least three basic laws of physics. The
Bactricans quite understood our desire to understand the technology behind the
weapon, which they simply called “God’s Tooth,” and were negotiating savagely.
Those negotiations had been proceeding for months, the Federation team led by
Curzon Dax, who was, although in the twilight of his illustrious career, still
perhaps the most respected diplomat of his time.
I had
watched him juggling arguments, concerns, and treaties with unquenchable
energy, until it dizzied and drained me. The announcement of the approach of
the Azziz ship was a welcome break from the negotiation table.
Glowing
from within as if in greeting, the Azziz ship nosed her way to the dock, and
then locked there.
The
Azziz, unlike the Bactricans, wished to join the Federation, wished to
exchange knowledge. For far too long they had been virtually alone, and they
craved entrance to a larger community of worlds.
Curzon
Dax barely seemed to breathe. “I have done this many times, young Sisko,” he
said, “but it always astonishes me how exciting it is.”
“Please,
sir. It’s better you refer to me as ‘Ensign.’ ”
“My
apologies.” Was that a glimmer of humor in his eye? “How exciting it is,
Ensign.”
“The
contact, sir?”
“And
what is to come.”
I
studied Dax, feeling more curiosity than I cared to admit. “What aspect do you
find most exciting? If you don’t mind the question.”
“Not at
all.”
“Is it
the new technology? The new languages and customs?”
Dax
considered before answering. “Languages and customs. The important thing about
a language is that it contains the thoughts of a people. Although one
can think things which cannot be put into language. ...”
I
bristled, remembering endless late-night dormitory debates on this very
subject. “I consider it axiomatic that language contains all that can be
thought by a being. Deny the word, and you deny the thought.”
“Well
said, Ensign. Freshman philosophy one-oh-one, I believe. Be by the book, but
not of it, young Sisko.”
“There
is more in heaven and Earth ... ?” I asked respectfully, inwardly seething.
Dax
didn’t seem to notice my sarcasm. “Precisely. Language is invariably shaped by
the philosophies and perceptions of the linguist. But while it tells us much
about a people and the way they see the world, it doesn’t tell everything.”
I
nodded silently. It was my place to assist, report, and learn, not to question
or interfere. Or debate. I could understand why a joined Trill would believe in
non-linguistic cognition, but the idea was, to me, anathema.
The
tiled floor began to vibrate. The inner door slid open. The hallway beyond was good Federation
tritanium and transparent aluminum, strong enough to contain a thousand
atmospheres. Halfway down, the texture changed.
The
pathway beyond midpoint was smooth, enameled, perhaps too slick, rather like a
snail shell. On the wall at my side, I saw the point at which the Azziz docking
“device” had joined with the Federation platform. It appeared to be some kind
of dried, hardened sap. I pressed against it with my thumbnail. Somewhat to my
surprise, it was not diamond hard. Rather, it depressed an eighth of an inch
and then held firm. When I removed my thumb the imprint healed almost
instantly.
“Look.”
Dax pointed. Above us was something that looked much like a crab, hanging from
the ceiling by a thick strand of that rubbery epoxy. “Imagine,” he said with
unfeigned respect. “A substance extruded by the living body of a creature, that
would pass Federation standards for structural strength.”
I had
to admit, the idea was dazzling.
Dax
stood before an opening that ... well, looked like nothing so much as a
mammalian sphincter muscle. It was dry, but glistened.
I
reached out and touched it, felt it give beneath my touch—for perhaps two
millimeters this time, and then hold firm.
Dax
shook his head very subtly, and I dropped my hands back to my side.
“Nervous?”
Dax said quietly.
“Yes,
sir,” I said. “This is my first ‘first contact.’ ”
“Forget
your theories, young Sisko.”
I almost
objected, but noted how excited Dax was himself: eyes bright, carriage erect.
This was a Moment, and clearly, he had never tired of them.
With a
tiny whiff of escaping atmosphere, the sphincter opened, and the Azziz
ambassador stood before us.
The
ambassador was four feet tall, vaguely humanoid, with vestigial featherlike
bristles that made me think that, in earlier days, his folk had been avian. His
skin and bristles were black, and he was cloaked in a stiff leather armor that
flexed without joints. Interesting.
“Ambassador”—and
here Curzon Dax said a word that I have never managed to pronounce, a tongue
twister brimming with lethal fricatives—“we welcome you to Pelios Station.”
The
ambassador inhaled, and made a hissing sound. Somewhat to my surprise, a
creature that looked rather like a flying amphibian, all wings and oversized
head and a bullfrog throat, flew up and nestled on the ambassador’s shoulder.
Rather like a rubbery parrot, I thought. “We of the Azziz,” the creature said,
“extend our greetings in return.”
Dax
nodded sagely. “Would you care to come aboard?”
The
bullfrog croaked in the Azziz tongue. The ambassador answered, and then the
bullfrog spoke in English once again. “I would love to. My Poet will accompany
me.”
“Poet?”
Dax asked politely.
Without
translating into Azziz, the bullfrog spoke again. Its throat puffed out with
unmistakable pride. “I am the Poet,” it said. “May our Refrigeration Unit, and
Grain Exchanger come aboard as well?”
Dax’s
expression betrayed momentary bafflement. I leaned over, whispering: “Sir, if
we assume that the Azziz vehicle is entirely bio-synthetic, it follows that the
vehicle itself is a colony. Each part: refrigeration unit, translation unit,
‘grain exchanger,’ etc., is a living, separate creature.”
Dax
smiled at me warmly. There was no guile there, and no condescension. “Indeed.”
It was
that smile that won me, made me want to know this Trill more deeply. The humor
was there, some joke that I could not quite see. And Dax was inviting me to
open my eyes, as if he had greater confidence in my potential than I did. In
all likelihood there would be good conversation about this, later, over warm
ale.
“Yes,
please,” Dax said, to the bullfrog Poet this time. “And to any of your colony
would like to explore our station, we would be a happy to appoint a guide to
answer all questions. How many ... ah, members would this entail?”
The
Poet croaked and whistled. The Azziz ambassador answered in kind. “We think
that perhaps eight of us would care to see your station. It has been a very
long trip.”
Dax
made swift, quiet comments into his communicator, and then smiled. “It will be
done,” he said.
“Would
you and your companions care to inspect the ship?” the Poet said, without
prompting from the Azziz.
“Very
much.” Dax turned to me. “Would you care to accompany us?”
The
laughter was in his eyes again. I would rather have had my fingernails pulled
out than miss such an opportunity. “Yes, sir.”
I
hadn’t seen anything like the inside of the Azziz ship since the last time I
attended an autopsy. It was moist but not wet, but everything seemed to
glisten. The air was dry, but every surface seemed covered with a thin mucosa.
The walls dilated to allow us to pass, and contracted behind us. I imagined
that at times the ship could form a solid, organic knot with no extra space at
all.
In its
present mode, the interior of the ship itself rather reminded me of the valves
of a great heart, with wide open chambers surrounded by clusters of living
tissue that fluttered, chittered and in general behaved like bats sleeping
against the walls of a cave.
The
Poet preened and buzzed to various of them. Several pieces of the walls and
ceiling emerged, whole creatures where before there had seemed to be a mosaic
of tissue, patched together for some unified purpose.
There
were no viewing screens in the craft as such, although the Azziz ambassador
explained that its own nervous system joined with the creature which exuded the
external shell, and that elements of that shell were sensitive to the entire
electromagnetic and gravitational spectrum, that this information was passed to
another creature whose brain could sort the information, from infrared to
ultraviolet, into a coherent map.
“And
the range of perception?” Dax asked politely.
The
translator seemed momentarily confused.
“The
range?” Dax pressed. “How many millions of miles, or light-years, or ... ?”
“The
entire range,” the Azziz said, simply.
Dax
nodded. My own head spun. The ambassador couldn’t possibly have meant what he
said.
Could
he?
The
entrance back into the station was quite the parade, with a procession of
slithering, hopping curiosities bouncing after ten guides recruited from the
diplomatic staff. The Bactricans seemed to resent the Azziz, for reasons I
couldn’t fathom. Perhaps they felt the newcomers distracted us from the formal
negotiations. Perhaps their apparent frivolity offended them. Personally, I
thought it was simply that the Bactricans felt most comfortable with their
noses held firmly and stiffly in the air.
My
Academy friend Cal Hudson was among the hapless guide recruits, and he smiled
grimly as something that looked like a headless chimpanzee climbed up his legs
and arms and hunched on his shoulders, ready for the tour.
“She
looks just your type.”
Headless
hugged him around the neck and did something that was either a kiss or the
gravest insult imaginable.
“You
owe me,” Cal said.
“It
must be love.”
“You’re
buying tonight.” Cal made a face, and then headed off down the corridor.
“Pelios Station itself is a mid-sized platform,” he began, “orbiting Pelios
between her second and third planets, twelve light-minutes from the star. It
maintains a stable crew of two hundred and fifty ...” I didn’t have the heart
to tell him that Headless probably didn’t understand a word.
The
Azziz ambassador and his (its?) translator were as interested to examine our
technology and mechanical innards as we had been to inspect the Azziz
accomplishments. Through the Poet, it made the appropriate ohh and ahh
sounds, and looked at the rivets, seals, and welds holding the steel and
ceramics together. It touched, and perhaps most disconcertingly, tasted the
seams.
Curzon
Dax, ever the diplomat, remained carefully oblivious to the chaos, guiding them
here and there, showing them the station taking all the time needed or desired
to absorb the entirety.
It
seemed forever before Dax turned the ambassador over to Starfleet Admiral
Janeway, who had arrived at Pelios only an hour after the Azziz ship. Janeway
was here for the final negotiations with the Bactricans, and to assist in the
rituals of initial contact, but the unflappable admiral’s eyebrows definitely
raised at the spectacle.
I
managed not to laugh aloud.
Finally,
Dax and I were alone. “So, Ensign,” he said. “What did you see?”
“They’re
like a troop of trained monkeys,” I said. “I’m not at all certain that we’re
really dealing with the Azziz brain. I think they sent this flock out as a
test.”
In the
hall behind us, something that looked like a leather beach ball with tongues
for arms bounced down the hall, stopping every few hops to sniff the feet and
crotch of passersby.
“Then
you haven’t seen enough yet. I heard you offer young Hudson a drink.”
He would
have heard that. How a man can have such a tolerance for the leaden rituals
of diplomacy and simultaneously possess such an appetite for good ale, I will
never know. I enjoyed a drink now and then at the end of an excruciating shift.
It was dessert, if you will. For Dax, I sometimes thought the dessert was the
meal itself. “Come, Ensign,” he said. “You will buy me a drink, and I will tell
you what your eyes do not see.”
Because
of its position near two mining planets, exploration and transport ships paused
at Pelios Station more often than such a minor outpost would ordinarily
require, and entrepreneurs of several kinds managed to establish a good living,
providing for their varied tastes.
The
most popular of the shops, not surprisingly, was a grogatorium, offering a
variety of flavored ales and entertainments, most of them of the gypsy variety,
but lately a new dancer had thickened the evening’s crowd. I rarely missed a
show when off duty.
Dax had
the capacity to work through any normal creature’s sleep cycles without losing
focus or mental speed. That being said, just as he could focus himself utterly
on any task at hand, he could concentrate just as impressively on a good glass
of synthehol.
We sat
at our usual table, in a corner dark enough to avoid the glare, but central
enough to catch the eye of the overworked waitresses.
“So,” I
said as we waited for the next show to begin. “Exactly what is it that you
think I missed?”
Dax
leaned back against the wall. “You saw a conglomeration of creatures, engaged
in an enterprise, and assumed that they were nonsentient, controlled by a
central mind.”
“They
certainly behaved that way. They only allowed a few of them off the ship, and
those behaved like children at best. I can only assume that those remaining
behind were vegetative.”
Dax’s
every word and gesture were carefully measured. He paused deliberately,
listening to the music for a moment before continuing. He seemed to understand
that good teachers and storytellers make the audience want the
information.
“The
mere fact of interaction in a group effort says nothing about the individual
intelligence of the members, young Sisko. Each member of the Federation
suppresses certain elements of its own will for the common good. Each member of
a military unit forgoes certain personal liberties in exchange for a heightened
efficiency of action.”
“I
hardly think that’s the same thing. And even if it were, that’s not my point.”
“Isn’t
it?” Dax said with deceptive innocence. “And, regarding that theme, what would
you say of our Bactrican brethren?”
I
cocked my head sideways. “I fail to see how a bunch of—”
“Ah ah
ah ...” Dax reminded me. He was, as usual, right. I had to fight the urge to
assume that those things I cannot understand are necessarily of a lower order.
“All
right.” I wrestled with my thoughts, seeking a better way to express myself. “I
hardly see how the two situations are equivalent. One is a group of genetically
engineered animals designed to replace machinery, the other is a highly
evolved, cultivated world in which ideas of caste and duty have evolved to a
level that would shame the sixteenth century Chinese court.”
“And if
I were to suggest that the two have much in common?”
“I
might grant that,” I said, “but still wouldn’t understand your argument.”
“You’re
learning, young Sisko. Only a month ago, you would have allowed me to ambush
you. ...”
Despite
myself, I allowed myself to feel a touch of pride. He was right. I would have.
Cal
Hudson appeared, and dropped himself into the seat at my side.
“Well,
Ensign Hudson,” Dax laughed, “Young Sisko tells me you might be engaged.”
Cal
muttered words I have never written down in my adult life. He grabbed my ale,
telling me to order my own.
On the
stage before us, the bar’s Betazoid manager was quietly setting up a trio of
chairs for their musicians. A moment later, three creatures of mismatched
proportions emerged, and initiated a tuning-up process with strange
instruments.
Dax
leaned forward. “Mr. Hudson,” he said. “We were debating whether a culture
utilizing advanced language and symbolic logic is necessarily more advanced
than a symbiotic form.”
“Such
as the Azziz?” Cal asked. “Or such as the Trill?”
Dax
chuckled and sat back.
“I
wasn’t falling into that one, sir.”
“Kudos,
Mr. Hudson. Ahh,” he said with vast satisfaction. “The evening’s entertainment
commences.”
Cal
actually felt more at home than I with verbal games, and I was glad that he had
seen through Dax’s question—although mortified that I had not. The waitress
returned with a glass for me just in time for the lights to dim. The bar had
gone mostly quiet now, in expectancy, and I felt the tension building even
before she arrived.
And oh,
yes, it was she. Unmistakably she, devastatingly she. As positively she
as any creature I had ever seen. Behind the silver body makeup and the
silver mask, it was difficult to tell what race she belonged to. Humanoid,
certainly, but her dance motion was so fluid that I would have sworn her to be
some manner of cat. She moved not exactly to the music but with it,
using it, her muscles fluttering and writhing in a costume that fit more
closely than a sheen of oil.
It was
impossible to miss her animal sensuality, but there was far more to her, a kind
of purity, an almost religious ecstasy.
I had
seen Sabbath Nile perform at least a dozen times, and every time, she wove me
into her web. I saw Dax reach under the table for the slender contact wires.
After a moment’s hesitation, I pulled a set out and applied them to my temples.
And was
lost. The contacts fed me her exertions, created the sensation that I was
observer, the dancer, and the dance itself. As if Sabbath spun me, spun us in a
web of exertion, skill, and pure spirit. I forced my eyes open, saw that most
of the others in the bar had also donned the equipment, and that we were all
joining together, all feeling what she felt. I felt what the others felt, a
feedback that grew more intimate and intoxicating by the second.
I was
drunken with her, touched by and reveling in the woman called Sabbath Nile. She
called herself an Empath mime, one whose art consisted of the creation and
projection of emotion. We not of her species needed some kind of artificial
linkage to experience her art.
I could
barely imagine its impact in native form.
Dax was
connected as well, I could feel him on the web, feel his odd, doubled
presence there next to me, but ...
But
where the rest of us were completely immersed in her performance, helpless in
the hands of a master, Dax’s eyes roamed the room, perhaps searching for
something.
Was he
studying the effect she had on others? Strange, because on the surface he was
as attentive, as passionately silent as the rest of us.
And yet
his attention was elsewhere, as well, no doubt a side effect of his symbiotic
nature.
I saw
where his eyes had roamed.
Today,
for the first time, I saw a pair of Bactricans in the bar. Dour, dry creatures
with no observable sense of humor, half the time I found myself hoping that the
negotiations with them fell through, and that they never joined the Federation.
I had
seen their thin tall males and short dusky females (at least that was what I
assumed them to be). But the sight of them shuffling about Pelios Station in
their robes, on their way to this meeting or that, had never meant anything
beyond the need for another round of talks.
Now,
they watched Sabbath like a hawk, and halfway through her performance, rose and
stalked out, seething with hostility.
Jealousy,
I thought. Simple jealousy.
There
was a yearning quality in Sabbath’s performance now. I felt her sadness pulsing
in my temples, and her dance had ceased to be a thing of rhythm or spirit, but
more personal, something of her own heart. Her aura literally flared, the light
seeming to emanate from her pores like a glowing mist.
Every
motion, every time she folded her waist like a flower bowing to the setting
sun, triggered another whole spectrum of response from the room. The induction
equipment fed it to us, and took a portion of our emotions and, doubtless, fed
it back to her, taking us all higher and higher.
Except
for Dax, whose attention remained on the departing Bactricans. I wondered if
the man had any real feelings at all. Was everything just an exercise in
diplomacy?
When
the performance was over, and she took her bow to thunderous applause,
whistling, nods, and body sounds that might have seemed rude in another
species, Sabbath left the stage and approached our table.
“Hello,
Benjamin, Cal,” she said to us, but slid into the booth beside Dax. Cal made a
disgusted clucking sound, and I felt a touch of heat simmering beneath my
collar, but managed to repress it. She peeled off her silver mask. The face
beneath was slightly flattened, rather like an Egyptian mask, but no less
feminine or appealing for it. Her eyes changed color with the light, or her
mood. She was a fabulous creature, to be sure.
“I
don’t get it,” Cal whispered beneath his breath, sipping from his brew. “She
could have either one of us—what does she want with ... ?”
“At
ease, Ensign,” I muttered. “The battle is not the war.”
I
wanted to know Sabbath with an intensity I had never felt before, and would
never again. It wasn’t lust, exactly. Well, maybe it was, but it was much more
than that. And the fact that she only seemed to have eyes for Dax was
absolutely maddening.
Cal and
I had vied for feminine attention since our earliest academy days, and despite
an enviable record of success, I sensed our efforts were useless.
I
wanted to smile, to dance, to sing, to quote poetry, but knew that Dax would
merely smile one of his maddening smiles and undo any efforts either of us
might make, revealing us as a clumsy and callow pair of boys in comparison. At
that moment I hated and admired him.
So
devoid of any meaningful choices, I drank my ale, afraid to speak, fearing that
my clumsy mouth might betray me even further.
Curzon
Dax seemed to treat her like a fond child, not the devastating creature that
she was. “An excellent performance, as always.”
Sabbath
inclined her head graciously.
“I’ve
only been here two weeks,” Cal said, “But just in that time I’ve seen your
performance ripen, and mature.” I’m sure Cal thought that that sounded very worldly.
She
took her eyes from Dax for a minute, and regarded Cal seriously. “So many
peoples. It is hard to weave the web.”
Should
I ask a question? Or not? I noticed that Dax was watching us, with something
approaching amusement sparkling in his eyes. Oh, damn him.
“We
were having a discussion,” Dax said finally, effortlessly wresting control of
the conversation. “About the role of the individual in the nurturance of the
whole. We in the Federation have encountered everything from extreme
individualism, which virtually precludes the creation of any society at all, to
extreme submersion of individual identity. This last creates a society so
stable that it remains unchanged for a million generations. Ensign Sisko: Would
you care to present your own position?”
I knew
I was on rocky ground here. Dax was probably trying to lure me into making some
kind of callow, straight-out-of-the-academy comment, which he would use to
prove I was incapable of individual thought. That, in turn, might reduce my chances with the lovely
Sabbath.
On the
other hand, if I said something that went against Academy philosophy, it
would doubtless end up in my record. Permanently. Dax was doubtless studying me
carefully with an eye to future promotions.
And
also, doubtless, enjoying the position in which his young aide currently found
himself. Damn him.
“I
think,” I said, “that a culture must deny individuality to the point that
symbolic logic systems have developed. After that point, there should be
sufficient divergence to encourage creativity. But after a time, the needs of
the one must be subsumed into the needs of the many.”
Cal
rolled his eyes.
“In a
cycle,” Sabbath said quietly.
I
almost clapped my hands. She agreed with me! Hah! One for the Earthling. I
turned on Dax. I mean, to him. “And you, Ambassador. What do you think?”
“Your
idea of a cycle presumes, I think, a ‘group will’ which cannot actually exist
without constant communication. Not like the turning of the seasons. I think
that there is a constant intermeshing of elements. Temporality is not part of
the equation. A culture is symbiotic. The organ systems function in a manner
simultaneously separate and collective. Evolution occurs when current behaviors
and philosophies are challenged or proven inadequate. Unless protected by
artificial barriers, such provings happen regularly. Individuality is overrated
and immature.”
Sabbath
watched us both, with a smile as secretive as her true face. There seemed something sad behind the smile, something I
could not quite grasp.
“And
you, Sabbath?” I asked. “What do you believe?”
“My
people have a saying.” And here I listened eagerly. She had yet to answer a
direct question about her people, although I assumed that she had come to the
station with one of the gypsy groups that regularly traipsed through, perhaps
stranding her here after an argument. “Serve the self, serve the group. Both
are slaves to the flesh. Serve instead Spirit, and serve both.”
Cal
rubbed his temples. “My head hurts. I’m going to find a game of chess. If I
don’t have some logic today, my head is going to explode.” He made his
apologies, and left the table.
She
laughed, a sound as musical as temple bells. “I am sorry.” She turned to Dax.
“Could we be together tonight?” she asked him.
I
wanted to pound my head into the table. I had heard of Curzon Dax’s legendary
facility with females, but it was still difficult to believe, even when the
evidence was as clear and indisputable as this.
Infuriatingly,
Dax barely seemed to notice her overture. “Not tonight, my dear. But I may have
time for you tomorrow.”
She
smiled eagerly, and I ground my teeth. I reached out and touched her wrist. The
fur on her arm was very slightly electric. I remembered the sight of her aura,
her electromagnetic field shifting into the spectrum of visible light, as she
danced, and the urge to touch her more ... intensely was almost
overpowering. “I’ve managed to acquire two portions of Rellian beef,” I said,
trying to keep the eagerness
from my voice. “I would love to prepare them for you tonight.”
She
touched my face, gazing into my eyes. Something like passion flared there, and
my own rose to meet it. I felt myself drawn forward, leaning into what would
have been the most intense kiss of my life. Then she pulled back. “You are very
dear,” she said. “And I think one day we will spend the time together that you
seek. But it will not be when you think, and it will not be what you imagine.”
Her
skin crackled as she brushed it against me, and she stood. “I must prepare
myself.” And she went away.
I
blinked several times, trying to get my mind back from the edge of overload.
When the room stopped spinning, I had the distinct impression that Dax was
laughing at me.
“Ensign
Sisko,” Dax said. “If you are to succeed with the opposite sex, you simply must
stop drooling. Might I furnish you a bib?”
My ears
flamed. “What was that all about?”
“Later,
perhaps. And did the story about the Rellian beef have any veracity? It’s been
a long time since I have enjoyed that delicacy.”
I
squinted. “Allow me to understand you. You have no appointment tonight. You
admit that the lady is incredible. ...”
“Virtually
a singularity.”
“Then
why postpone the inevitable? I assume that your symbiotic nature ...” I brought
myself up short, suddenly realizing I might be forgetting my place. “I’m sorry,
Ambassador. I don’t mean to presume.”
“You
presume, but are not presumptive, young Sisko,” Dax said kindly. “My apparent
reticence should not deceive you. Sabbath Nile is an extraordinary creature,
and I eagerly anticipate the consummation of our relationship.”
That, I
decided, was more information than I actually needed. Nonetheless, I had opened
the door and could not complain if Dax strolled through it.
“Ensign
Sisko—are you familiar with the writing of your sixteenth century master
swordsman, Miyamoto Musashi?”
“A
Book of Five Rings? I read it, yes.”
“Are
you familiar with his nine core precepts?”
“Ah ...
‘Do not think dishonestly ...’?”
“Yes.
That was the first. But the sixth and seventh are the most interesting, I
think. ‘Perceive those things which cannot be seen,’ and ‘develop intuitive
judgment and understanding for everything.’ ” If you have a weakness, it is not
in your mind, which is strong and well-wrought. Neither is it in your body,
which is quite well developed. It is in your intuition. You don’t understand
what you can’t see and touch. And you don’t trust what you don’t understand.”
I felt
on slightly firmer footing now, and sipped my ale again. “And I should learn
these things from a sixteenth century Japanese?”
“Or a
twentieth century jazz artist. I forget his name. I believe that he said, ‘Jazz
is what happens between the notes.’ ”
“Between
the notes,” I repeated. “And what exactly does that mean?”
“It
means, young Sisko,” Dax said, pushing himself heavily from the table, “that it
is time for me to find my way to bed. In the morning, then?”
I
nodded, studying my sparkling ale. I couldn’t help the sensation that some game
more important than chess was being played out, right under my nose. “In the
morning.”
I awoke
in the morning with my head splitting. That sparkling ale was definitely not as
harmless as synthehol, and I made another of my periodic promises to confine
myself to the more placid brew. I needed every erg of mental energy. Whatever
game Dax was playing, I wanted to be a part of it. Currently, I couldn’t even understand
it.
My
quarters aboard Pelios Station were modest but comfortable, enough room to
sleep and wash, a tiny dining nook for private entertainment (I took most of my
meals in the mess hall), and a desk.
Performing
my morning ablutions, I caught sight of the time in time to curse, realizing I
was late for the morning meeting.
The
replicator coughed out the simplest possible meal that would satisfy my morning
nutritive requirements, a chewy bar of enriched oatmeal fortified with
everything a human body needed to survive a day of manual labor.
It
tasted terrible, but those were the wages of oversleeping.
I was
out the door, thinking of the reason I had overslept: the attempt to retrieve
the fragments of a dream which
swam just at the edges of consciousness as I awoke. In it, Sabbath and Dax were
pruning a tree, a little bonsai tree, and commenting about the branches: how
they appeared separate, but were actually part of the same trunk. The tree was
trying to talk. It kept changing aspects, and the last one, held just before I
was wrenched awake by the voice of the station computer, was a topiary which
bore a suspicious resemblance to one Benjamin Sisko.
By
implication I had granted Dax a free rein with the lovely lady, but had no
intention of quitting so easily. There were still gambits to be played.
Ambassador Dax might well have seniority on the station, and I had to defer to
the old man in all such matters. But when it came to affairs of the heart,
well, that was one arena where I knew it was fair to compete in any way I
chose, including those which might be blatantly unfair.
By the
time I entered the conference room, the next set of negotiations were already
underway.
The
Bactricans sat at one side of the table, Federation officials on the other. I
understood some of the negotiation points, such as mutual defense treaties and
access to Bactrican technology. Others were secretive, not spelled out
explicitly in these meetings. Some codicils were in the memory of Ambassador
Dax, and others remained in coded transmissions.
Bactrican
mining rights were currently on the table, and the negotiations seemed to be
going well.
Dax
nodded his head in brief acknowledgment as I entered the room, and then
returned to his intense conversation.
Again,
I was struck by the drabness of the Bactricans, male and female. It was odd:
Both seemed not only androgynous, but utterly bereft of the kind of mild and
pleasurable tension one finds between members of most species. Perhaps they
only mated at some set time of the year. On the other hand, it was certainly
possible that the Bactricans treasured a low birth rate, and toned down their
personal chemistry as an odd form of birth control.
A
Bactrican rose to speak. “That leaves a final matter, recently brought to my
attention by Co-councillor Y’men.” He seemed familiar. Where had I seen him ...
oh, yes. The prude who had fled the bar the previous evening.
“The
abomination. It must end. The ceremony of death is not to be violated, and must
be completed, or the spirits cannot rest.”
There was
a buzz around the edge of the table, and Dax spread his hands flatly on its
smooth surface. “I cannot promise that,” he said. “Please remember that until
you are officially a member of the Federation, you cannot make such demands,
whereas our rules of sanctuary are very clear. I doubt if you wish to discuss
this further in so open a venue.”
“You
blackmail us,” the Bactrican ambassador said. “You know that we need this
treaty. And yet our customs, strange as they seem to you, must be respected, or
our peoples can never live in peace.”
“I am
quite certain,” Dax said, “that we can find a resolution.”
“We
must,” the Bactrican ambassador insisted. “The Prince Royal arrives later today, and all such matters must be
resolved—or we will resolve them.”
There
was a moment of deadly silence. What was passing between this creature and Dax?
What was the implicit threat, and what the transgression? Frankly, it was
beyond me.
There
followed a series of words which I could not understand, but when the
translator caught up with it, he said,”—presence of the Azziz is offensive.”
The
Bactricans stood from the table and filed out, the drab, gray little creatures
seeming to brighten the room by the mere fact of their departure.
“What
is the enmity between Bactricans and Azziz?” I asked.
“The
Bactricans are strict isolationists. To this day, they will not allow visitors
to their planet’s surface. If they didn’t need Federation strength, they
wouldn’t be at the table now. The Azziz aren’t part of the Federation—so the
Bactricans don’t need to be polite.”
The
level of emotional intensity at the table seemed to imply more than mere
distaste. I wondered if Dax was lying to me. “The Azziz don’t seem fazed.”
Dax
chuckled. “Not at all. They have technology, and knowledge, valuable to us, but
nothing we have has ever really been more than an interesting oddity to
them. Like a delicacy, not a necessity. They won’t enter into any kind of
diplomatic negotiation with us. They barely understand the concept.”
“Because
their connections are more basic than that?”
Dax
smiled, temporarily lifted from his thoughts. “Yes, Ensign. That is apparently
it. It would be like negotiating to be someone’s liver.”
I
laughed. Then as casually as I could, I asked: “And what was all of that about
‘the abomination’?”
Dax’s
face darkened again. “Well, that is a matter I can’t discuss with you yet. It
involves the most basic aspects of their culture. It seems we have offended
them. It must be resolved before the treaty can move forward.”
He
sighed. “I was invited to meet with the Azziz, who are transferring their goods
this afternoon. They will leave again tomorrow. I asked Sabbath if she would
care to attend, but I will be detained. You might care to take my place.”
I felt
a jolt of surprise. “You’d trust me?”
“Young
Sisko,” Dax said kindly. “If I didn’t, I would hardly have requested you as my
adjunct.”
Sabbath
was surprised to see me when I appeared at her door. I hazarded that she was
between shows, and resting. She was dressed in a wrap that was as sheer as a breath
of spring, and yet somehow modest. The fine fur that covered her body was at
rest, without the fine, rippling motion that was so appealing.
She
greeted me with cautious pleasure. “Yes, Benjamin?” she said. “Can I help you?”
I felt
much like a schoolboy, wishing that some of Dax’s studied, confident manner
would rub off on me. Little doubt why she preferred the old man. Be that as it
may, if I lost the contest, at least I would lose fighting. “Ambassador Dax
sent me to escort you to the Azziz ship.”
Her
stride was long and fluid, and although she was four centimeters the shorter,
she easily matched speed with me. “You’ve never said much of yourself,” I said,
trying to open the conversation.
She
smiled without answering.
“And
Dax has said little about you. He implied once that on Earth you might have
been thought of as a nun.”
She
cocked her head sideways, as if not recognizing the word.
“A nun.
A celibate female practitioner of a religious discipline. Sometimes thought to
be married to the spiritual head of the sect. Nunneries were often places to
drain off the excess female population, a form of birth control.”
Her
smile was secretive, and maddening. “I would expect Dax to say something like
that.”
“Is he
sworn to secrecy?”
“He is
discreet.”
I
wanted to pound the walls. “For God’s sake. Where are you from? What are your
people? I’ve never seen anyone like you before.”
She
stopped, and gazed up at me. “I like you, Benjamin. I really do. But it is not
proper for you to ask such questions.”
I
sighed, and nodded, and we went on. God damn you, old man, I said to
myself. What do you have that I don’t have, and how long will I have to live
before I have it? Sabbath moved slightly ahead of me. I watched her body
sway beneath the robe. Hypnotic, the most feminine thing I had ever seen in my
life. I contrasted her with the
Bactricans, the pale males and doughy females, and shuddered.
There
was just no justice in this world, I thought, and then hurried to catch up.
The
Federation bioengineer, a Vulcan named Sh’tan ushered us through the tunnel
toward the Azziz ship. “I have modified our tricorders,” he said, “so you will
be able to see the input from the Azziz ship as interpreted by the station
computers. This is a rare opportunity.”
Apparently
others on the station agreed. Admiral Janeway and two assistants accompanied
us. Even Cal was there, although I suspected that he was more interested in
Sabbath than Azziz technology.
“Since
first contact with the Azziz almost two hundred years ago,” Sh’tan said, “we
have admired their bioengineering. But we never had anything to offer them.
However, our own advances in these areas led us into some arenas where the
Azziz themselves have not gone.”
“Such
as?” the admiral asked.
“Some
of the genetic manipulation which has enabled crossbreeding and intermarriage
between species has led to interesting avenues. When we demonstrated some of
the results to the Azziz, it was as if they finally considered us to be
civilized. Until now, they would make only minor trades with us. We believe that
they found us amusing. Now ... we think we have cause to be optimistic.”
The
dock’s former incrustation had become more advanced, a crystalline shell over
the initial weld. It matched the
coloration of the station walkway. “As far as we can tell, this happened
automatically,” Sh’tan said. “What we thought was an exudate created by a
living thing was instead a colony of polynucleic organisms regurgitated by a
host. They spontaneously analyze any substance they come in contact with, and
produce a matching composition.” One of his arched eyebrows lifted. “Quite
remarkable, considering that it is stable to a thousand atmospheres.”
The
sphincter dilated, and our group of eight entered the ship. It was warm, and
the bullfrog Poet bounced ahead of us. It bounced up to a portion of the wall,
stuck, and then burbled at us. Its English had grown surprisingly polished in
its forty hours aboard the station. “Meet the Navigator,” it said. “Its optic
nerves permeate the entire outer shell. It is sensitive to the entire
electromagnetic spectrum. It allows us to navigate by the stars.”
Poet
bounced to another wall. “This is the Refrigeration Unit,” it said. A blue ball
of what seemed to be glowing fluid oozed from beneath a bunch of cables that
descended like living intestines. It extended a pseudopod toward me in what
seemed a friendly gesture. Without thinking I reciprocated, and the Poet yelled
something in a pitch far too high and fast to be intelligible. The pseudopod
withdrew after the barest touch. Cold raced through my hand like electricity.
Poet
had narrowly saved my fingers. The Refrigeration Unit had sensed my body heat,
and responded by draining it off. I blew on my fingers to warm them.
The
admiral asked several questions about the interaction of the Azziz ship
components, some of which grew so technical and abstract that I had difficulty
following. Sabbath listened intently to every question, and every answer.
One of
the interesting surprises was the secondary propulsion system, something that
apparently acted as a low-velocity steering system when the ship positioned
itself. This was a creature whose digestive gasses apparently exited at a
sufficient velocity to allow its primary “engine” to begin gathering
interplanetary, and then interstellar hydrogen.
This primary
creature would unfurl from the ship like a gauzy net, continuing to thin and
expand and feed, gathering fuel and feeding it to the ship, which then
accelerated to near light-speed. There was a living warp drive as well, but
language failed our attempts to understand how such a being functioned.
It was
magical. Why did all of these creatures work together? The more I saw of the
ship, the more I realized the delicacy of their interdependence. The admiral
seemed stunned at the implications of the Azziz ship, but curiously, Sabbath
smiled, as if she understood something that we did not.
What
was there about the Azziz ship that the Bactricans loathed so greatly?
I
didn’t know, but suspected that the clue was right in front of me. If I could
read the secret codicils. If the Azziz had interacted with the Bactricans in
previous years ... but what was Dax hiding ... ?
The
tour ended, and the Poet continued to interact with the officials as Sabbath
looked out through the ship’s clear crystal shell, gazing out at the stars, her
flat, beautiful, delicately furred face saddened.
“Is
there something wrong?” I asked.
“They’ve
come so far,” she said. “And so far to go home. You’re wrong, you know. You
think they want your technology.”
“They
don’t?”
“No
more than you want another arm. No. They want family. That is their great
drive.”
“And
you understand them?”
“I
think so.” She was quiet for a time, her lovely face falling into repose. “I
was trained for my dance, to weave my web, my—” and here she said a word that
sounded like shatharma. Then she seemed startled that she had said it,
and smiled ruefully. “I shouldn’t have said that.”
“Why
not?”
She
ignored me. “But it seems that the more we do what we must do, the further from
ourselves we stray.”
“What?”
She was making no sense at all.
“The
Azziz ship was constructed to leave home. Can you imagine what their home world
is? One mass of organisms interacting for the common good. But the better such
a ship is, the further it travels from all that it knows. Its excellence brings
it pain.”
“And
that’s what you understand?” I sensed that she was saying something of critical
import, and strained to understand it.
She
seemed to emerge from a self-inflicted trance. “I speak too much,” she said.
“Come. Let’s join the others.”
* * *
The
next event of the Azziz itinerary took us past the Bactrican negotiation hall,
where Dax joined us once again. He had just finished his round of negotiations
and was, I am certain, quite ready to join the company of joyful creatures once
again.
And it
was quite a parade. There was virtually a procession of the little living
components hopping and rolling down the hallway, in and out of the paths of the
humanoids and humans who walked in their midst. Because of the confusion, I
didn’t see what was about to happen until it was too late.
A
member of the Bactrican council stepped out of the corridor, and fired a
narrow-beamed energy weapon. The beam was no brighter than a phaser’s, and at
first that’s what I assumed it to be. But from the corner of my eye I saw it
strike the Poet, bouncing just in front of Sabbath—and what happened then I
didn’t think about until moments later.
As
disaster struck, Dax grabbed the little Azziz ambassador and moved him to
relative safety, out of the line of fire.
Cal
protected the admiral.
Reflexively,
without thinking, I threw Sabbath to the ground and shielded her, then jumped
up again. But Cal had already seized the offending weapon, and wrested it away
from a Bactrican I had never seen before. He was tall, and feral, and wore
jewel-encrusted chevrons on his shoulder, and I automatically assumed that this
was the prince of whom the Bactrican ambassador had spoken.
I
glanced at Sabbath. Her eyes met mine. She knew that I had placed my own life
in jeopardy for her. Something profound and electric passed between us.
All was
confusion, voices strident and frightened. “Was anyone hurt?” I looked again at
where the Poet had been, and shuddered.
There
was nothing left. And my memory, searching back over the last few seconds,
remembered something that made no sense: the Poet had not “disintegrated.” It
looked as if he had been abstracted to angles, then impossibly folded and
folded and folded again until there was nothing left, until he simply
disappeared from our reality.
“God’s Tooth.”
The
Bactrican writhed in Cal’s grasp, hissing “The abomination! The abomination!”
before collapsing in defeat. A team of security people arrived, circling the
Azziz ambassador and the admiral.
Dax
looked utterly ashen.
The
entire group was hustled into a side room, while alarms blared throughout the
station. Dax calmed the Azziz ambassador with gestures, then surprisingly, and
quietly, spoke to Sabbath.
He
turned to me. “This situation is very grave,” he said. “Grave for all. Please,
take charge here. You are my eyes and ears. I will call for you later.”
Dax and
Admiral Janeway hurried away. I was able to overhear only a little of what was
said between them. A little was enough. My ears burned.
From
diplomatic triumph, suddenly this one crazed act had destroyed everything. What
worried me, and what I couldn’t understand, was the way the Bactrican seemed to
have completely deflated. There was no mistaking his body language. Alien or
not, inhuman or not, the only possible message was one of naked, feral rage and
betrayal.
And a
promise of death.
The
station was quiet again, and I had waited for the emergency to die down before
relaxing my guard. I was completely wrung out, exhausted. The situation seemed
clear cut, and yet impossibly complex at the same time. For reasons that I
didn’t understand, a Bactrican prince had attempted to assassinate the Azziz
ambassador, and had instead killed the little translator. Had he acted alone?
That seemed unlikely, considering that he had ranted of “the abomination,” the same
word used by their diplomatic mission. But as an act of policy, what if
anything exactly did it mean?
My head
was spinning.
Dax
sent me a message to join him in his quarters. When I entered I was surprised
that the room was so dark and gloomy. For a moment, I didn’t see Dax at all,
then finally spied him in a corner standing, gazing out through a wall-sized
viewscreen that masqueraded as a window. He looked somber in a way I had never
seen.
“Excuse
me,” I said, after standing for almost a minute with no sign of recognition.
“Is this a bad time, sir?”
“Indeed
it is, but not for the reasons that you might suspect.”
I was
silent, suspecting that Dax was about to tell me something I had been waiting
to hear for weeks.
“Would
you care to pour yourself a drink?” Dax asked and indicated the bar. I did, but
this time gave myself a good synthehol-based brandy. I suspected that I was
going to need all of my wits.
“Sir,
you were nearly killed this afternoon. ...” Dax waved me away, dismissing that
concern. I tried again. “Does this destroy hopes of recruiting the Azziz for
the Federation?”
Dax
nodded. And then he sighed vastly, and began. “Ensign,” he said. “I am going to
tell you something that I should tell no one. But I have to have another mind
share the information, or it is going to be impossible for me to think. Can you
do that for me?”
I
nodded, and approached a bit closer.
“You
know that the situation here has been delicate. The Bactricans seek to join the
Federation, but have cultural as well as economic considerations. We would like
access to their null-beam technology, and they don’t want to share it.”
“Moot,
now that we’ve seized a sample for ourselves,” I said. “And the Poet, well,
that is tragic, of course, sir. But the ambassador is safe.”
Dax
shook his head slowly. “No, young Sisko. I am afraid that there has been much
here that you have not understood. Unfortunately, your contact with other
species has primarily been through study. You have yet to make the adjustment
to actually interacting with them. You see only what is shown.”
The day
had been entirely too stressful. I really didn’t need to hear this. But I
controlled myself. “Please,” I said. “Educate me.”
Dax
sat, enough of his face in shadow that I still couldn’t read it easily. “You
saw the Azziz collective without intuiting the implication of such a body. You
saw the Bactricans and felt some disdain for their drabness. ...”
“I
never said ...”
“You
didn’t need to, Ensign. And lastly, you saw my interaction with Sabbath, and
assumed that my interest in her was the same as yours.”
That
perked me up. “It isn’t?”
“No, it
is not. Let us progress down the line.” He held out his hand and began to tick
off fingers. “One. The role of the Poet was crucial. Each separate creature in
the collective had its own dreams, its own needs, its own mind. They stay
together because of the Poet. It was the job of the Poet to sing to them, to
keep them in harmony.”
I was
sobered by the implications. “And without him?”
“Without
him, the collective fails. The Azziz ambassador cannot return home.”
“But
... certainly one of our own ships can carry him ...”
“Again,
you don’t understand. The entire ship is the ‘ambassador,’ as if a
biosphere sample of every important life-form on Earth were sent to another
star for study. Remove a single major link, and the chain fails. We have no
means of conveying the entire ship to its origin. We wouldn’t even know where
to begin.”
This
was bad. “All right. And where else have I presumed?”
“You
presumed that the Bactricans tried to kill the Azziz ambassador.”
“Didn’t
they?”
He
shook his head. “No. The target was Sabbath.”
My head
spun. “Sabbath? Why? Have they a quarrel with her people?”
Dax
turned and looked at me flatly. “They are her people.”
“What?”
“That
is the secret that they have fought so hard to keep, for which they very nearly
ruined their entrance into the Federation. You have seen the ‘male’ and
‘female’ of their species. Sabbath is like a bee, a creature that lives to aid
their pollination. There are not many of her kind, but they are necessary for
reproduction. Their males and females cannot respond to each other sexually
except in the presence of such a creature. Sabbath’s kind are raised and taught
in nunneries, separate from the general population. And only the ruling classes
have them on permanent call: They form bonded triads, betrothed at birth, and
sealed until death.”
My head
spun. “Then the recent death of the royal family ...”
“Yes.
Sabbath is a ‘Third,’ the third of the Triad. It was her place to die with the
king and queen, a custom that on Earth I believe was called ‘suttee’ and ended
by your British in the India of the nineteenth century ...”
“It was
actually continued well into the twentieth,” I said. Dear God. Suddenly it
became clear. Sabbath’s unique appeal ... trained from childhood, bred for a
thousand generations, there was only one downside: She was expected to commit suicide when her
“mates” died.
Instead,
somehow, she had escaped to Pelios Station, stowed away perhaps, and there she
had found Curzon Dax.
“She supplied
you with information about the Bactricans, and you fought to keep her alive,” I
said, finally understanding.
He
nodded, silently.
“And
you’re going to give her passage from the station?”
“No.
What I tried to do was force the Bactrican government to renounce their claim
on her life. If she travels from the station, they will hunt her down. Here, at
least, I could provide a modicum of protection.”
What a
nightmare. His attempts to protect her had led, indirectly, to the death of the
Poet necessary to return the Azziz to their home world.
I shook
my head. It hurt. “Why is Sabbath’s existence such a secret, for God’s sake?”
“Multiple
reasons—only the obvious one being the fact of the royal disgrace. Long ago
they fought a terrible war over the ‘Thirds.’ Jealousy beyond anything we can
imagine. It is impossible for them to imagine outsiders who do not desire the
creatures of Sabbath’s sect.”
I saw
the problem now, for the first time, and marveled that Dax had been able to
hold it all in his head. The Azziz, who possessed a technology coveted by the
Federation. The Bactricans, who enslaved an entire segment of their population,
but might be induced to change their ways to gain the recognition they craved.
And a
single creature named Sabbath. Certainly not male, but not truly female, either. Something else. Something other,
that had touched me deeply, almost spiritually. Her life was in the
balance, in a situation that now had no balance. The treaty would
collapse, the Azziz were lost. Without the intercession of the Federation,
Sabbath’s people might endure another thousand years of reproductive
subjugation.
And I
had seen the look in Admiral Janeway’s eye: This little problem could end
Curzon Dax’s career in disgrace, and kill mine before it had a chance to start.
The
Academy had not prepared me for this.
I
cradled my head in my hands. “Is there anything we can do at all?” I said.
He laid
his broad hand on my back. It felt strangely comforting. One part of me wanted
to kill him, and another wanted to praise him for attempting the impossible. If
he had succeeded in pressuring the Bactricans into pardoning Sabbath, it would
have created a cultural ripple that might have freed her kind.
Bless you, Dax.
Damn you, Dax.
“Nothing
we can do, no,” Dax said finally. I rose, still shaken, and left him.
And it wasn’t until I had left Dax’s presence that I realized that I had heard
an emphasis in that last sentence that I hadn’t understood at all.
Sleep
came slowly to me that night, and for a very long time I was certain that it
wouldn’t come at all.
I lay
in my bed, staring at the ceiling, wondering what kind of creature Curzon Dax
was, to weave so tangled a web.
Here
there was despair, alienation, murder, perversity, miscommunication, technology
beyond our imaginings, provincialism, and disaster on five or six different
levels. Those were just the first problems that came to mind.
A
single tragic error seemed to have collapsed the possibilities for success on
two different fronts. I was horrified. If this was the life of the peacekeeper,
give me the cold equations of an engineer. This was not for me.
I
barely heard the door to my cabin opening.
I
smelled her before I saw her, outlined there against dim night light. I held my
breath, not believing. She bent over me, silencing my questions with a single
finger to my lips.
“Do not
ask from me,” she said. “Do not try to take what I cannot give. But you risked
your life for me, and it is right to share with you.”
She
bade me stand, and clumsily I obeyed. I seemed to have forgotten how to speak,
or move. She took my hands, and smiled the saddest, gentlest smile I had ever
seen.
We
danced. Just danced. She performed for an audience of one. I didn’t need the
induction equipment. I wasn’t a Bactrican. But I understood then, what she meant
to them. I understood why they would kill for her, would throw away their
chances of peace and security to keep her kind a secret.
She
opened my mind that night, opened my eyes there in the darkness of my room, and
filled them with her own light.
The last
thing I recall was her voice, soft as perfume in my ear. “Do not walk away from what you need, young Sisko,” she
said, almost as if she was someone else. “He cannot offer it. You must ask.”
I tried
to ask her what she meant, but her fingers stole my thoughts, my words, and
left only song.
It was
enough.
I awoke
without ever realizing I had lain down to sleep. Of course, she was gone. I
drew my knees up to my chest, shivering with the heat, wondering if I would
ever belong to myself again.
I was
afraid for her, knowing that her life was forfeit if she was found on the
station. The princeling had tried to take revenge for the royals, but there
would be others. I was not thinking clearly, and knew it, but could not help
myself. There was only one thing to do. I would take her away. If it meant
abandoning my commission, so be it. Certainly there were things more important.
My
vision narrowed down until it seemed I was staring down a tube, darkness at the
edges. All I could see was Sabbath, all I could feel was the need to be with
her again, on whatever terms. The thought of her performing in the cabaret one
more night was more than I could endure.
It had
to end, and I would end it.
I
tapped my wall communicator, and called her quarters. There was no answer. “Computer,”
I said to the empty air, “locate Sabbath Nile.”
“Sabbath Nile is no longer on Pelios
Station.”
I
stood, staring at myself in the mirror, temporarily not seeing the man I was,
the man I had always assumed myself to be. Suddenly it seemed that I was not
there, that I was looking through myself, that I could see a man-shaped
outline, with stars sparkling behind them, an odd illusion that persisted even
when I blinked. Certainly I was sleeping. I could not see what I saw. Could not
have heard what had just been said.
“Repeat
that?” I heard myself say.
The
reply came at once. “Sabbath Nile is no longer on Pelios Station.”
I
remembered opening and closing the door, but couldn’t remember dressing.
Couldn’t remember running down my hall, couldn’t remember how long it took me
before I stood before Dax’s door. I pounded my fist against the door, and it
did not open. I drew stares from the people who passed in the hall, and
whispers, and suddenly realized that I was a sight to behold.
I
slowed, the stars no longer drawing me when I closed my eyes. I slapped my
combadge. “Computer, locate Curzon Dax.”
“Curzon
Dax is in the main council room.”
I took
a deep breath, attempting to steady myself, and looked down at my clothing. I
wouldn’t have been surprised to discover myself naked, such a fever was I in.
But I wore my uniform, and except for the fact that my creases were out of
alignment, I looked fine. I straightened myself, thanking endless hours of
practice for allowing my unconscious ablutions to be as polished as this.
I was
still in a fever when I came to the council room door. It opened for me.
Admiral Janeway and several Federation officials were congratulating Dax as I
entered. I caught snatches of their conversation, and only a very tiny word
that told me everything that I wanted to know.
“Sacrifice,”
the word had been.
I
stared at Dax, suddenly understanding, not wanting to understand, but in some
way needing to. Dax shook Janeway’s hand as the admiral left, still speaking
his congratulations.
Dax
stood in the empty room, at the podium.
I felt
the essence of the understanding Sabbath had imparted to me slipping away. “A
celebration,” I said numbly.
Dax
nodded. “Yes, Ensign, There is cause to celebrate.”
“The
Azziz have left, haven’t they?”
Again,
Curzon Dax indicated the affirmative.
“And
Sabbath Nile is with them.”
“Sh’tan
predicts a seventy percent chance that her nervous system can carry the load,
can sustain them. Can get them home.”
“But
she’ll never return.”
“We do
not know that. This opens a new era in our relationship with the Azziz. We
don’t understand enough about them to say.”
“She
may not survive the journey.”
“None
of us survive the journey, young Ensign.”
Anger
such as I had never felt, never known existed flooded up in me, coursed
through me, strong as the love and the need, only inverted. Through it I heard
Dax say:
“She
came to you last night, didn’t she?”
I
nodded, miserably. In a moment, I would kill Dax for what he had done. In a
moment, I would—
My legs
were unsteady.
“She
should not. What she shared with you was forbidden at the deepest levels
imaginable. She gave you a gift, young Ensign. One she thought you strong
enough to bear. Was she right?”
I
couldn’t see, couldn’t hear. Knew only the great, great pain filling my heart.
“She
could not stay. Could not go anywhere within the Federation. Assassins are
inexpensive, and they would have considered it a matter of honor to kill her.
She wished to live. We now have the treaties, and the technology we need. That
her people need. The Azziz, in being joined to her, are joined to the
Federation in a way that they can understand.”
My
entire body trembled, and I could no longer stand. I sat heavily on the table,
arms hugging my stomach.
He was
a monster. “So everything ... is fine now?” I put as much acid in the
word as I could.
“No, it
is ill,” and as he said that his officious manner slid aside for a moment, and
I saw a very old, very tired man, a man who had, once again, made decisions and
compromises lesser men could not even imagine. Sacrificing a splendid young
woman. Or saving her. Capping his own career. Or damning himself. “But it was
the best we could do. It was the only answer, once the violence occurred. Young
Ensign, I see something in you, an urge to understand everything within the logic you love so dearly. But the last and
greatest lesson of reason is to understand that there are things beyond its
reach. I see this in you. As did Sabbath. Which is why she gave you the gift
she did. Was she wrong?”
I gazed
at Dax, every muscle in my body trembling, feeling the tide of my rage washing
over me, clawing at me, demanding ...
What?
Dax
watched me with eyes that were old before my birth, eyes that were beyond
compassion.
We are
each so alone. We treasure what small joinings we may find. As the Azziz with
their colonies. As Dax and his symbiont. As Sabbath and her Triad, even though
she had chosen life.
And
where did I belong, and to what?
My
knees weakened beneath me and I felt a great wave break as the induced rage and
rapture began to subside. I looked at my fingers and saw hands, not stars.
Looked at Dax’s face and saw a face. Dax touched my shoulder, and I stepped
back, knowing that I did not understand the creature before me, and worse, that
I did not understand myself.
And I
had never understood Sabbath at all.
What
was I doing here? As the wave broke I felt naked, exposed, like a child
standing on a beach, staring at a tidal wave representing the knowledge of a
universe vaster than all the seas, trying to contain that vastness in the plastic
bucket at my side.
“Young
Ensign,” Dax said kindly. “There comes a time when we understand that our minds
do not contain the firmament. But still, our hearts can grasp it. Let go.”
I
turned away, the breaking of the wave unleashing a flood of grief so strong
that I wanted to die, knew I must die, knew that I could not survive, and Dax’s
arm was around me, comfortingly, and I was ashamed—
And
that passed as well.
I wiped
my face, turning aside, composing myself, feeling Sabbath’s presence receding
away and away from me, even as the Azziz ship was accelerating toward its
distant point of origin. Felt myself saying goodbye to someone who had broken
vows to embrace life, had cheapened herself to display in a bar gifts that had
once been the exclusive province of royalty. And due to a bizarre twist, had
found a way to redeem herself, and before she had, had set my mind free in a
way I couldn’t have imagined.
And how
much of this was Dax’s doing? I gasped for air, unformed words catching in my
throat. There was a tiny space open, Sabbath’s gift, dwindling even as I
examined it. Soon, if I did not fill it, it would close completely, and I would
once again be thrust into a world of numbers and physics. Such a waste. There
was more, so much more.
I
looked at Dax with desperation, seeking words that wouldn’t come.
“I
know,” Dax said.
“What
do I do?”
“I
cannot tell you that.”
Desperate,
feeling the insight vanishing, even as I could not place it into words, I said:
“Be my mentor, Curzon Dax. Be my friend. Help me understand.”
“You
will never understand,” Dax said, and watched me carefully.
So many
things, so little time. That spark of light glowed within me for a final
moment, and I said: “Then help me see. Help me hear the music between
the notes.”
His
face broke into a small smile. “That I can do ... Benjamin.”
The
world was not what I wished it to be. It was not what was represented in the
text books, not what I thought or theorized or philosophized it to be. It just
was.
And
perhaps, just perhaps, that was not such a frightening thing. Tentatively, I
extended my hand. He extended his, and for the first time, I truly felt the
clasp of the greatest friend and teacher I have had in this life, the good and
honorable Curzon Dax.
“Don’t mistake a new face for a
new soul, Kang.”
—Jadzia Dax
“Blood Oath”
L. A. Graf is herself a conjoined species, collectively
possessing degrees in geochemistry, biology, and neuromuscular therapy, as well
as owning two dogs, four snakes, six cats, and a breeding leopard gecko colony,
whose population fluctuates seasonally between twelve and forty animals.
Individually, she is: Karen Rose Cercone, university geoscience professor,
author of the Helen Sorby—Milo Kachigan historical mystery series, and owner of
half the dogs and cats and all of the snakes; and Julia Ecklar, author of the
popular Noah’s Ark science fiction series originally published in Analog magazine,
professional animal trainer, and owner of the other half of the dogs and cats,
as well as all the geckos.
L. A. Graf
THE SYMBIONT INSIDE her stirred.
Not physical movement, not really. After
joining, the soft-bodied packet of neurons and wetware that was the soul of
Trill immortality fell quiescent among its bed of living organs until its host
finally died decades later. So Jadzia knew, intellectually at least, that her
reservoir of living memory didn’t squirm about inside her, didn’t spasm with
her fear or twist with her pangs of guilt. But another part of her—the part
that struggled to wrap words and images around the river of sensations poured
into her awareness by her symbiont—that part insisted on fabricating tactile
impulses where none could possibly exist. When Jadzia “felt” Dax tremble and
huddle closer to her heart, she knew it was only a phantom reflection of their
shared despair.
Still,
her stomach clenched around that pulse of apparent movement, and she knotted
her fist against the pouch in her belly without caring whether the sensation
was real.
“Ziranne?”
She’d
made her voice as soft as possible, but the woman at the window still jerked
around as though she’d been slapped on the shoulder. Fear shadowed her gray
eyes almost to black, like a broken owl’s wing spread across polished river
stone. Stranger’s eyes, Jadzia thought with another subtle tremor. Stranger’s
eyes in a sister’s face.
“Can we
go home now?” Ziranne asked plaintively. “I don’t want to be here anymore.
Whatever happened, I’m really sorry. I just want to go home now.”
Jadzia
tried on a reassuring smile. It felt stiff and unconvincing on her lips. “We
can’t go home just yet. The doctor will tell us when.” Maybe later. Maybe
never.
“But I
said I was sorry.” Ziranne plucked at the bandaging that swathed her forearm to
the elbow. “I never meant to hurt anybody. I was only trying to help.” Long,
precise incisions carved parallel tracks down the length of her forearm,
revealed inch-by-inch with each unwinding turn of bandage. Her voice hardened,
becoming more adult and less familiar to Jadzia’s ears. “Any Trill who wasn’t
already joined would have done the same thing I did.”
Jadzia
swallowed dryly to release her voice. “But you are joined now. Aren’t
you?”
The
sound that burst from Ziranne might have been a laugh. She turned to face the
darkening sky outside the window, her back to Jadzia, and her not-quite laugh abruptly dissolved into tears. Jadzia watched
her run trembling fingers over the ridges left in her arm by what the doctor
said might have been a knife blade, was probably a piece of glass.
“How
did you become joined, Ziranne?” She hated that she sounded so distant, so
cool. But she was also afraid of what might happen if she were to weaken her
guard. “Whose symbiont is inside you now?”
That
was the question. Its elusive answer was why the Symbiosis Commission had sent
for her, and why Benjamin Sisko had rerouted the Defiant from returning
to Deep Space 9 following its near disastrous recent visit to Earth. After he’d
successfully thwarted a plot to overthrow the Federation government by a group
of renegade Starfleet officers—officers who’d been his friends—Dax knew that a
new crisis was the last thing Sisko needed right now. But he’d brought them
here just the same. That was the kind of friend he was.
So the
questions hung in the air. How does a Trill preschool teacher who has never
requested joining acquire a symbiont without stealing it from the subterranean
pools? Had she killed the previous host? If so, who had the victim been ... and
why had she done it?
Ziranne
answered that question the way she had a half-dozen times before. With a
flinch, as though some painful specter rushed up and stabbed her from behind,
followed by a frightened, childlike question of her own: “How did I get here?
Why don’t I remember it?”
Jadzia
knotted her hands together in her lap. “You walked into a hospital in Gheryzan,
in Trill’s eastern hemisphere. You were frightened, incoherent. When the doctors checked your medical records,
they realized that you weren’t—that you shouldn’t have been—joined. They tried
to find out where your symbiont came from, and that’s when you ... hurt
yourself.” No—lying, no matter how well intentioned, would get them nowhere.
Lifting her chin, Jadzia continued, more bravely, “You tried to kill yourself.
Everyone was worried that you didn’t feel safe with all the strangers around
you, so they brought you here to the Symbiosis Commission and asked me to come
and stay with you.”
Whether
Ziranne drifted or stumbled, it was hard to tell. Within a few steps, she’d
settled to the edge of the room’s only bed, one hand still clasped around her
wrist as though holding back blood that no longer flowed. “And they asked you
... why?”
This
time, the pain rushed in before Jadzia could distance herself and ward it away.
“Because I’m your sister.” Something felt odd about that assertion, so she clarified
it by saying, “Jadzia is Ziranne’s sister. Don’t you remember?”
Ziranne
rolled onto the bed in a single sluggish collapse, hands fluttering up to
shield her eyes from things Jadzia couldn’t see. “I’m tired of remembering,”
she whispered. “All I ever do anymore is remember. And I don’t even know whose
memories they are.” She dropped her hands and stared back at Jadzia with those
dark and alien eyes. “If you’re really my sister ... you remember. Remember it
for me.”
Jadzia
sucked in a deep breath, not sure if her sister meant that as a challenge or a
plea for help. Over the past hours, she had tried every conversational gambit
she knew to reach through the tangled knot of illicit symbiont and unprepared
host to reach the real Ziranne. This was the closest thing to a breakthrough
she had managed to achieve. Another shiver, a real one this time, shook through
Jadzia as she tried to decide what part of their shared past could call
Ziranne’s own personality out of hiding. It was her symbiont, not herself, who
calmly processed that reaction and extracted from it a strand of her personal
history, saved and stored in its neural tissues now as well as her own. The
memory came to her with such force that Jadzia was almost surprised not to see
her breath turn to frost in the air.
“Do you
remember the summer we got to play in the snow?” Nothing flickered in those
shadowed eyes, but at least a little of the tension seemed to seep away from
Ziranne’s pale face. “We were eleven, and we spent our vacation on Uncle Koal’s
farm. ...”
It was
already midsummer, and it had finally snowed on their uncle’s plantation in
Trill’s southern hemisphere. They swathed themselves in identical yellow
snowsuits, stamped their feet into identical blood-red boots, and squealed off
into the snow as though these few months in another climate somehow extended
their entire year. Summer was their favorite season, but they did so love the
snow.
Separated
in age by only ten months, it was during the dull, muggy summers when they
gloried in their temporary sameness. Sharing an age, even if only for a couple
of months, seemed almost the same as sharing a soul. They told strangers they
were twins, laced and twined their hair the same, looked at themselves in the
glass of still summer ponds and speculated as to whether it was necessary for
twins to arrive in the world at the very same time, or if twinness was
something more than that, something that still blessed them despite the months
separating their respective births. Spending their “twin season” this year in a
southern winter somehow seemed to cement their bond, promising to extend its
warmth and giddiness year-round. They were too young to really appreciate how
it would be later, when they returned to the north feeling as though they’d
never had a summer at all.
Jadzia
was technically oldest. That meant very little when they weren’t in school, but
it was something about which adults would meticulously remind them. Even when
they were in school, their general sameness in age, looks, and
temperament opened up a delightful array of options for mischief. Jadzia
excelled in mathematics; Ziranne had a natural flair for art. Jadzia attended
two years of math classes (one of them in Ziranne’s name), while Ziranne
produced an impressive collection of cybersculpture all signed in Jadzia’s
distinctive hand.
When
they were eleven, they didn’t realize yet how the change from children into
young women would shatter their illusion of sameness. It was the last year in
which the shape of their faces would be so exact, the lean wisp of their bodies
so featureless. By the very next summer, Jadzia would have begun the
irreversible bolt toward statuesque; the year after, Ziranne’s voice would
deepen and her form fill out toward plumpness. They would forever carry the family mark that said
“sister,” but no one would ever again mistake them for twins.
So in
retrospect, that summer-turned-winter was in many ways the last of their
childhood. Jadzia often wondered if they would have spent it differently, done
things differently, if they’d had some inkling of the different directions in
which they’d soon go. Seven lifetimes of experience said no. That was part of
the joy of childhood—every day seemed eternal, the whole of the universe spread
out before you. By the time you could truly appreciate the fearful impermanence
of life—even seven times over—it was already too late to go back and make
better use of your misspent youth. So instead of cherishing each moment by
constructing loving holopics of all the childish pleasures they shared, they
galloped heedlessly through that vacation time, squandering their days in
countless undocumented snowball battles and skating contests. They made
silhouetted tableaux by flinging themselves into the snow, and dared each other
to stick their tongues to icicles.
Surfacing
from yet another collapsed burrow in the snowy blanket, Jadzia blinked through
the sparkle of frost on her eyelashes at the escarpment bordering the lida orchard.
“Hey, Ziranne,” she announced, “I’ll bet we could slide down that.”
Ziranne
didn’t look up, distracted by the detailed work of scooping the slush out of
her snowsuit sleeves. “We could if we got up to the top.” She yanked off one
glove and shook it fiercely. “I don’t feel like climbing, Jadzia.”
“Sissy.”
An angry
blush steamed across her cheeks. “I’m not a sissy. I’m cold.”
“It’s winter.”
Jadzia scooped up a double handful of snow, twisting to cram it down the back
of her sister’s collar. But Ziranne, as always, knew what she was thinking, and
flung herself backward with a squeak to avoid the attack. “Everybody’s cold in
winter. You’re a sissy!” Hauling one foot then the other loose from the
rucked up snow, Jadzia trooped off toward the hillside with big, stomping
strides. She felt like she had to pick her feet up to her shoulders to crunch
her way through the drifts. “I’m gonna go sliding.”
She
heard Ziranne flounder upright behind her, but didn’t expect to see her mirror
sister barrel past at an awkward run until Ziranne was already in the lead,
arms pumping, snow-wet hair flapping in her wake. Yelping a wordless objection,
Jadzia gulped a lungful of air and galumphed off in pursuit.
They
reached the foot of the hill almost together—Ziranne got her foot on the slope
first of all, but Jadzia let herself fall forward so that her hands hit only a
bare heartbeat after. Their eyes sparkled with tears from their running, their
cheeks red and glowing, and steam blasted out on the sound of their laughter as
they collapsed atop each other, panting.
“So how
do we get up?” Ziranne asked at last, rolling to her back to peruse the hill
from this new perspective.
Jadzia
propped herself up on her elbows and took a serious look. “Uncle Koal has a
path that he climbs up to spray the trees in the spring.” She only knew this
because she’d heard him talk about it, not because she’d ever been here in the
spring. “It’s got to be under the snow someplace. All we have to do is find
it.”
Which,
under almost a meter of windswept powder, was much easier to contemplate than
do. They finally found the first weathered stone close up against where the
rocky slope jutted straight skyward. Jadzia used the full length of her arm to
sweep one step, then the next, and the next, climbing the carved path as she
cleared it. Ziranne followed behind, kicking loose whatever snowpack was left
with the heel of one thick-soled boot. By the time they crested the top, Jadzia
shrugged against a trickle of clammy sweat between her shoulder blades, and
Ziranne was forced to plop to the ground and dig snow out of her boot tops as
well as her sleeves.
The
view more than made up for any discomfort. The whole of Uncle Koal’s plantation
stretched out beneath them, a fluffy quilt of patchwork white, brown, and
silver where snow, roads, and ponds intersected. Jadzia imagined she’d scaled
Bes Manev in the far east of Trill, the world’s tallest mountain. She squinted
against the fierce Manevri sunlight, shielded her eyes from the stinging wind
that had blown many a previous explorer from this exalted height. When I’m
joined, she thought, I’m going to explore all the places and do all the
things I’ve ever dreamed I could. She might even bond with a symbiont who
already possessed all those experiences and more, memories ripe for the living.
She found the thought exhilarating.
“Jadzia,
look! It’s already got a slide built in!” Ziranne ducked across Jadzia’s view,
interrupting her reverie. Tugging at the arm of her sister’s snowsuit, Ziranne
shook a soggy mitten at the narrow downward sweep clearly visible in the
contours of the snow.
It wasn’t
really a snow-slide, of course—it was the run-off channel Uncle Koal had
installed to keep the lida trees from flooding when the spring rains
came so often and hard. This became apparent as they rolled and slid and
scooted their way down the curving track. It took three or four passes to
finally pack enough snow against the synthrock to form an acceptable chute.
When they’d succeeded, the trip from top to bottom was wild and fast, and
Jadzia had to close her eyes so that the thrilling rush of the world flying by
didn’t distract her from her screaming.
It was
on her third trip down, after she’d thudded into the wall of snow at the bottom
and rolled, that she craned a look back up the slide to greet her sister—
—And
found no one there.
“Ziranne?”
A thin
little sound that might have been a voice, might have been the wind. Lurching
to her feet, Jadzia gulped two deep breaths to fill her lungs and clawed
partway back up the bottom of the slide. “Ziranne!”
This
time her sister’s shriek was unmistakable.
She
aborted her first instinct to struggle back up the way she came, and instead
flung herself down the rest of the chute to hit the ground running. They’d used
their own bodies to plow a crumbling trench from the foot of the slide to the
foot of Uncle Koal’s hand-carved stairs. Jadzia stumbled through it now with
her knees knocking against the too-close sides, her feet catching on lumps and
bumps she’d somehow never noticed in her previous passings. The trail stretched
suddenly endless and labrynthine. She skidded to round the last bit of curve
before the stairs, and her eyes clapped on a splash of sun yellow suspended
from the hill only a few steps from the very top.
Jadzia
was up the narrow flight and on her knees above her sister without clearly
remembering how she got there.
“Jadzia!”
Ziranne had lost one scarlet mitten; the fingers of that hand made a claw
between chinks of stone and had already gone from pink to white in the cold.
Her mittened fist balled around a handhold Jadzia couldn’t even see. “Jadzia,
I’m stuck! I slipped and I’m stuck!” She glanced up at her sister for barely an
instant, sensing perhaps some dangerous shift of weight Jadzia could only
imagine. The trembling in her narrow frame kept knocking one foot off its
perch, forcing her to fight all over again for that purchase.
“Hold
still!” Jadzia commanded. She felt suddenly cold herself, her belly all liquid
and sick. “Stop shaking, Ziranne, or you’re gonna fall.” She tried to straddle
two steps, a knee on either, and lean over to take hold of Ziranne’s wrists.
But even before she could put a hand on her sister, she knew she didn’t have
the leverage, didn’t have the room to drag her back up to safety. She
straightened without ever grabbing her. “I can’t pull you up—”
“Jadzia!”
Ziranne jerked with sudden movement, as though frantic to lessen the distance
between them. “Jadzia, don’t leave me!”
Jadzia
let herself thump a few steps farther down the stairway, afraid she’d reach out
to Ziranne on frightened impulse and cause them both to fall. “Ziranne, hold
on. I’m just going down the stairs, but I’m not leaving. I’m gonna fix things.
Okay?”
Ziranne
might have nodded, Jadzia wasn’t sure. “Just hold on,” she said again. Then she
turned decisively away and rode the stairs down on her bottom. Suddenly, the
thought of standing up on that narrow descent was too unnerving.
At the
bottom, she rounded the slope to stand beneath her sister. From above she’d
harbored some vague plan to go below and catch her—to stand on something,
maybe, and reach up and let Ziranne drop down into her hug. But there was
nothing there to boost her taller, and Ziranne was higher than she’d seemed
from the stairs. They’d even shouldered away whatever snow had shrouded the
foot of the slope to make their path from the slide, which left only packed ice
and frozen ground to catch her sister’s body. Jadzia felt frustrated tears burn
at the backs of her eyes and blinked them angrily away.
Ziranne’s
wail floated down from above, a lace cloth dropped from a great height. “My
feet are slipping!” That same foot, pawing at the rockface, slipping off,
flailing in the air for a moment until it found its place again. “I’m gonna
fall!”
“No,
you’re not! “The assertion burst out of Jadzia sounding more like anger than
the desperation she felt. “I
told you, hold on! Don’t let go ’til I tell you to!”
She
said it without quite knowing what she meant. But as soon as the words were in
the air between them, Jadzia knew what she needed to do.
Slim,
child-arms could only shovel up so big a load of snow, and the whole width of a
child’s shoulders could only bulldoze a tiny bit better. She ended up turning
her back to the target she’d mentally drawn on the ground beneath her sister,
and bent over to dig two-handed like a mreker, throwing snow between her
legs in a rapid shower. She dug out everything within a body length of ground
zero, then moved another length away and starting digging some more. Her back
ached by the time she moved inward to redistribute the new circle of snow onto
the rest of the pile. First with bent-over digging, then an armload at a time
when her hands wouldn’t dig anymore, she built up a bed of snow almost as tall
as her head. She could hear Ziranne crying high above her and realized even
before her sister did that if this cushion wasn’t good enough, they didn’t have
time to make it any better.
“Okay!”
she called upward, stumbling back from the pile. “It’s okay now, Ziranne—let
go!”
Ziranne
was falling before Jadzia’s voice had even faded from the air.
She hit
the pile with a breathy, heavy whump! Snow billowed up like smoke,
splashed outward in a wave. Jadzia ducked her face away only enough to avoid
being blinded by the shower, then rushed forward to scale the mini-mountain and
grab at her sister’s hand.
“Are
you all right?” she demanded breathlessly. She crawled on top of Ziranne, patting at her fearfully, trying to read the
wide-eyed expression on her face. “Are you hurt?”
Ziranne
raised her head up to look from side to side. Her bare hand patted at the snow
her fall had packed, and she blinked as though not sure what she was seeing.
“You piled up the snow.” Looking squarely at Jadzia, she repeated, as though
amazed, “Jadzia, you piled up the snow to catch me!”
Jadzia’s
heart lodged in her throat. “‘You didn’t know?” When Ziranne only shook her
head, Jadzia hit her on the shoulder, hit her again as fear and anger all came
to a head inside her. “Then why did you let go, you idiot? If you didn’t know I
had the snow pile down here, why did you just let go like that?”
Ziranne
seemed amazed the question even had to be asked. “Because you told me to.” She
laid back against the snow and gazed up at her sister with a trust Jadzia had
never recognized before and would never misunderstand again. “I knew you
wouldn’t tell me to let go if it wouldn’t be okay. I knew you’d take care of
me, Jadzia. You always do.”
Not
this time, Jadzia thought as
she watched Bashir carefully repack his medical kit at Ziranne’s bedside. It
pained her to admit that she’d failed so miserably at her age-old job as
sister’s keeper. This time there’s not snow enough in the world to cushion
your fall, Ziranne.
None of
Jadzia’s recollections had seemed to connect with her sister, and she’d finally
given up when Bashir had come in to do another round of tests in an attempt to identify the symbiont
biochemically. She didn’t know whether to be reassured or worried that
chemically induced sleep could erase so much more of the turmoil from Ziranne’s
face than the most important shared memory of their young lives.
“How
are you holding up, Old Man?”
She
flashed Sisko a quick, automatic smile. “I’ll be all right.” She crossed her
arms and hugged herself against another phantom shiver. “I just wish I could
say the same about my sister.”
“We’re
certainly not making the progress I’d hoped for,” Duhan Vos admitted. Jadzia
thought she detected a surprising impatience in the Symbiosis Commissioner’s
voice. He’d been elected to the Commission less than six months ago. A late
arrival from a backwater colony world, he’d entered the running with promises
to revolutionize how the Commission dealt with unjoined Trill and abuses of
power. Now, the possibility of making good on all his campaign promises
apparently took precedence over whatever empathy the man had once possessed. Or
maybe it was just his newness to a position of power that left him feeling he
had to prove his worth by solving this mystery single-handedly.
Whatever
his reasons, Jadzia didn’t need Duhan Vos to tell her that if she failed to
find out how Ziranne had come to be joined, the only alternative was to take
the symbiont from its unauthorized host and place it directly into the
subterranean pools to regenerate. She fiercely pushed that thought out of her
own mind, although she couldn’t keep its shadow from darkening the cascade of
Dax’s memories. Duhan was right—this would all have been so much easier if the traumatized symbiont inside
Ziranne had been able to communicate with the unjoined symbionts in the pools
when Ziranne was immersed in their waters. Instead, they’d detected only chaos
in that ancient mind.
“What
about your end?” she asked Sisko, abruptly. If she thought too long and closely
about all the odds arrayed against them, it only served to distract her. “Have
you managed to track down any hosts who could have lost their symbiont without
the Commission being informed?”
Her old
friend shook his head. “We’ve checked all of Starfleet’s sources. There still
haven’t been any reports of a dead or dying Trill host, on-world or off.” His
dark glance slanted over to Bashir, who was running more diagnostics over the
slow rise and fall of Ziranne’s diaphragm. “So far, all Julian’s tests have
been able to do is help narrow the search to symbionts between two-and
three-hundred years old. That still leaves us with hundreds of possible joinings
to check up on.”
“Some
of which,” Duhan said with an edge of frost in his voice, “the Symbiosis
Commission has already made contact with. Captain Sisko, I’ve already told you
that we’re going through the list of joined Trill as fast as we possibly can.”
“The whole
list,” Sisko reminded him. “I’m sure your overworked assistants won’t mind
us continuing our efforts to narrow down the number of Trill they have to call
or visit. After all, Starfleet has put us at your disposal until this matter is
resolved.”
“It
wasn’t my idea to call Starfleet.” Duhan looked as if he wished he could call
the words back once they were released, tightening his lips until his teeth dug
into them. After a moment’s thought, he continued, “I don’t feel it’s
appropriate to involve outsiders in what has always been a most private and
sacred affair for Trills.” He didn’t have to elaborate for them to know he
meant the passing of symbionts from host to host. “Yes, the Commission has
heard rumors that a sort of ... ‘black market’ exists for unjoined Trill
symbionts. The theft of symbionts from their legitimate hosts is a crime so
heinous that most Trills could never consider such a thing. But for others ...”
His voice trailed away, and he turned away from Ziranne as though suddenly unable
to look at her. “Well, Captain, you simply can’t imagine what it’s like to be
denied something every aspect of your native society insists you want to have.”
Sisko
might not be able to, but Jadzia certainly could. For a handful of hours, Dax
had been nested in just such a symbiont thief—a sad, desperate communications
worker named Verad who had been willing to risk as many lives as it took to
obtain the symbiont he wanted. Dax had been Verad for the duration of their
joining—hours that the symbiont, and, through it, Jadzia, still remembered with
an eerie, pitiful clarity. The feelings of self-hatred and rage that seemed to
boil out of those brief memories were so alien, so horrible, that Jadzia
touched on them as rarely as possible. Dax had seemed perfectly content to bury
them as deeply as any symbiont’s memories could be, although they were never
truly gone.
Could
Ziranne have felt that same crushing self-hatred? What kind of sister did that
make Jadzia Dax, to have never noticed Ziranne’s agony?
Duhan
Vos saved her from further recrimination by reaching out to draw the blinds on
the room’s only window. “I’m sorry, but as soon as we finish this questioning
session, I’m going to recommend—”
“We may
not be able to finish it.” Bashir snapped off his medical tricorder and swung
around to join them. His somber face warned Jadzia that the news wouldn’t be
good. “Your sister needs more than just bed rest. Her neurotransmitter and
endocrine levels are all over the map, and I’m seeing evidence of peritoneal
inflammatory in the connective tissue surrounding the pouch.”
“She’s
rejecting the symbiont,” Duhan said sadly. “It appears it no longer matters—”
Jadzia
opened her mouth to protest, but Bashir forestalled her. “Normally I’d agree,
Commissioner. But there are also signs of iscemic necrosis in the symbiont
itself. That generally means the symbiont hasn’t established the vascular
connections it needs for life-support.”
“And
it’s also a sign of even more advanced rejection.” Duhan looked truly alarmed
now, not just unsettled by the intrusion of Starfleet into Commission affairs.
“We have to act. Jadzia Dax, I’m sorry, but if the choice must be between your
sister’s life and the life of a symbiont, you know the Commission must protect
the symbiont.”
Jadzia
glanced over her shoulder at the still form on the bed behind them. She felt
more than saw Benjamin Sisko’s
reassuringly solid presence come a step closer to her. “Yes,” she said quietly.
“I know.”
Bashir
surprised her with a loud sigh. When she shot a startled glance at him, she
could tell from the twist of his mouth that it was himself he was irritated
with. “Excuse me if I was unclear, Commissioner. Ziranne has begun
forming the appropriate capillary network to support the symbiont. It’s not
complete, of course, since implantation was so recent. But the necrotic tissue
I’m seeing is from some previous implantation trauma. Something of a much
greater duration than the normal host—symbiont bonding period.”
Jadzia
frowned. “You’re saying the previous host kept the symbiont despite ongoing
rejection problems? For a long time?”
“Impossible.”
Duhan shook his head, hands smoothing the air in front of him as though chasing
out the wrinkles in a quilt. “The Commission would never allow—”
Benjamin
Sisko frowned him into silence. Sisko might have no official standing here, but
the cloak of moral authority he wore as a Starfleet captain seemed to carry as
much weight in the Trill Symbiosis Commission as it did on Deep Space 9.
“Doctor,
is there anything about the symbiont’s condition that the host would be able to
feel physically? Could Ziranne have known something was the matter if a doctor
didn’t tell her?”
“I’d
need to run more tests to be absolutely sure.” Bashir opened his tricorder to
consult whatever notes he’d made there. “There are some anomalous protein and enzyme traces I’m not sure how to
interpret, but I think they’re contributing to the symbiont’s inability to
establish a correct neurological bond with its host. And when you add that to
the previous damage—I don’t think Ziranne can be consciously aware of very much
concerning this symbiont.”
“Other
than being overwhelmed by its memories, which she can’t organize or control.”
After that long first session with her sister, it was still the only thing
Jadzia was sure of. “She can’t sort any of her own memories out of that flood,
not even the most basic childhood facts.”
Bashir
followed her gaze to the bed and its restless occupant. “She may not have
access to her own memories. She’s been sedated in one form or another since showing
up in Gheryzan. With a majority of her higher neurological functions
suppressed, she can’t possibly be processing speech on her own. Anything we’re
hearing has to be from the symbiont.” And its inability to communicate in the
pools—as well as Jadzia’s repeated failures to reach through it to
Ziranne—proved just how addled and unreliable it had become.
“Maybe
we don’t need Ziranne’s memories.” Sisko leaned back against the windowsill,
fists clenching in thought. “Maybe all we need is what we already know.”
Jadzia
took a deep breath, hearing the undertone of realization in her old friend’s
voice. “What are you thinking, Benjamin?”
Sisko
took a step as if to begin pacing, then brought himself up short, glancing
across at Ziranne’s fragile suspension into sleep. “According to the other
teachers at her school, your
sister took a leave of absence a week ago. Before she left, she told several of
them she was concerned about the grandfather of one of her students, and
intended to go off planet. We’ve found records of her having booked a shuttle
to Shal Tul, but no records of her return to Trill.”
“That
was all in the message we sent to Starfleet,” Duhan said tiredly. “And I don’t
see what any of it has to do with the symbiont’s current state of health.”
Sisko ignored
the comment, turning instead to look directly at Jadzia. “We all assumed
Ziranne wandered into that hospital in Gheryzan because she knew she needed
help—she knew the symbiont and she were in danger. But what if that wasn’t the
case? Gheryzan is half a planet away from Ziranne’s home. What if she went
there, to that particular hospital, because she was looking for someone?”
“Her
student’s grandfather?” Bashir guessed.
Jadzia
frowned. “You mean she never went to Shal Tul? But it’s not like Ziranne to lie.
“That was assuming she was still Ziranne then, that she hadn’t yet become the
not-quite-joined thing she was now.
Sisko
shrugged. “Maybe she did go to Shal Tul first—and whatever she found there sent
her surreptitiously back to Trill. Back to that hospital in Gheryzan.”
This
time, it was Duhan’s turn to pace. “Captain, I’m afraid there’s nothing special
about the hospital in Gheryzan.”
“Except
for the mental ward.” Jadzia was rewarded with puzzled looks from Sisko and
Bashir, and a startled, but suddenly thoughtful, frown from Duhan Vos. Curzon Dax’s cynical memories reminded her
that even up-and-coming Trill politicians didn’t get appointed to the Symbiosis
Commission by being stupid. “Unlike humans, Benjamin, there are Trills who
still suffer from some brain disorders that don’t respond to even the most
advanced Federation medicines. Our neural chemistry is complicated by our
ability to join—”
“So the
same characteristics that let you bond with your symbionts also leave you
susceptible to debilitating brain disease.” Bashir sounded satisfied rather
than surprised, as if this confirmed something he’d long suspected. Duhan’s
scowl told Jadzia this was another matter the Symbiosis commission preferred
not be discussed among non-Trills. If Bashir noticed the Commissioner’s
discomfort, he gave no sign. He was already striding over to punch a new
request into the computer terminal at the corner of the room. “That means the
symbiont could have come from someone whose own brain-damage in turn gradually
damaged the symbiont—”
“—and
who was a permanent resident of the hospital in Gheryzan,” Sisko finished.
“No!”
Jadzia couldn’t tell if the distress in Duhan’s voice reflected his agitation
at the disclosure of so many intimacies regarding the Trill symbiont-host relationship,
or merely his growing anxiety about the damaged symbiont itself. It didn’t help
that Ziranne looked more pale and fragile with each straining breath. “This is
all a waste of time!” the commissioner insisted. “Even if you locate a former
host at that hospital—even if the host is still somehow alive—we can’t risk
putting the symbiont back into a brain-damaged Trill. Look how much damage has
already been done! What we need to do is return this symbiont to the pools so
it can heal.”
“If we
do that, my sister will die!” Jadzia heard her own voice scale upward, but
didn’t care anymore how much fear it revealed. She was fighting for a life as
important to her as her own. “I won’t let you take the symbiont until we’ve
exhausted every other possible—”
“Verad.”
The
name seemed to echo between the white walls like the dying rumble of the
avalanche of shock it triggered. Duhan spun around to stare at the human doctor
in what looked like horror, as if Bashir had sprouted wings. Jadzia simply
stared at Bashir, stillness the only possible lid she put on the cold, unwanted
flood of memories her symbiont could not help but offer. It was left to Sisko
to ask the obvious question.
“What
about Verad, Doctor?”
Julian
Bashir turned away from the computer, his dark eyes looking as stunned as
Jadzia felt. “That’s who’s at Gheryzan. The Trill who tried to steal the Dax
symbiont over a year ago—he was sentenced to permanent residence in the mental
ward at Gheryzan.”
It made
a certain amount of sense that he’d be there, Jadzia realized. Verad certainly
hadn’t been stable when he’d appeared at Deep Space 9 to announce that, despite
the Symbiosis Commission’s opinion otherwise, he was the perfect host for Dax.
Yet the last she’d heard was that he’d spent one year and a day at a Trill
rehabilitation facility, only to emigrate to an off-world job after being
declared cured of his pathological insecurity and envy of the joined. Jadzia
had magnanimously allowed that she’d probably have wanted to move someplace
where nobody knew her, too, if she’d committed the crimes he had.
“Don’t
expect him to be too communicative,” Bashir had warned them, paging through the
documents on his computer screen more rapidly than any human had a right to.
“His medical record states that he’s currently suffering from dissociative
catatonia. That’s just a few steps up from a persistent vegetative state. Not
surprising, really—dissociative disorders are apparently the most common
facultative disorder among Trills.” He looked up from his reading, the blue-green
light from the touchscreen reflecting faintly in his eyes. “If this is right,
he’ll be in a worse state than your sister. She at least has a stolen symbiont
to give her some semblance of a voice.”
Crossing
the Symbiosis Commission’s central garden, Jadzia tried to focus her thoughts
on something other than the image of her sister as a silent, fragile mannequin.
So. instead, she thought about how the Trill sunlight felt almost alien on her
skin after all her time in the artificial light of Deep Space 9.
It
always unsettled Jadzia when she came home—this feeling that her home planet
had become less familiar to her than a Cardassian-built orbital pile of steel
and duranium. For reassurance, she reached as she always did for Dax’s memories
of Curzon’s reaction to the same feeling. Her immediate predecessor had enjoyed the intellectual stimulation of
seeing his home-world with fresh eyes after every diplomatic mission, and
Jadzia could usually soothe her uneasiness by dipping into his remembered
delight. This time, however, all she felt was her buffeting fear that the Trill
home-world would never be the same after this visit, and neither would she.
“I’ll
try to talk to the symbiont while you’re gone,” Bashir had promised softly,
just before Jadzia slipped from her sister’s room to follow Sisko to Gheryzan
and whatever answers waited there. “I think I can adjust the sedative balance
enough to completely neutralize Ziranne’s input while leaving the symbiont
coherent. Commissioner Duhan can help me try to make contact with it. I
actually think it may work better if you aren’t here to spark an emotional
response.”
Jadzia
nodded, not trusting her voice by then. After coming so many light-years, it
felt strange to be told her best chances of saving her sister involved simply
walking away.
“What
are you thinking, Old Man?” Sisko held the door that led out of the garden and
through the Symbiosis Commission’s teaching halls to its transporter station.
He’d already alerted Chief O’Brien back on the Defiant to coordinate
their transport to the Gheryzan mental hospital, although for politeness sake
they’d use the hospital’s own pad. Now that they knew Verad might somehow be
involved in this mess, Sisko had said grimly, there was no sense taking
chances. Jadzia wasn’t sure if she should feel vindicated that Sisko took the
Verad threat more seriously than Bashir,
or if she should just suspect her captain of humoring her.
“I’m
really worried, Benjamin.” Jadzia took a deep breath, trying to sort through
the emotional worries she knew were hers and the logical concerns that belonged
to her inner self. “Ziranne wouldn’t have any reason to get in touch with Verad
on her own. Any connection she has to him has to have been initiated from his
end. What if Verad’s not catatonic, and this is all his idea of getting revenge
on me—on Jadzia—for being the one who got to keep Dax?”
Sisko
shook his head, but she knew him well enough to recognize disbelief rather than
disagreement in the gesture. “Don’t jump to conclusions, Old Man. We still
don’t know for sure that Verad had anything to do with what’s happened to your
sister. After all, part of the agreement Starfleet had with the Symbiosis
Commission when we returned Verad was that they’d never let him endanger
another symbiont, especially yours. His presence in Gheryzan might just be a
coincidence.”
Jadzia
stepped onto the transport platform before him, her own headshake as crisp as
Emony could have made it. “If there’s one thing I’ve learned in seven
lifetimes, Benjamin, it’s that even coincidences don’t come out of nowhere. I
can’t ignore the fact that my sister ended up practically on the doorstep of
the man who once stole my symbiont, only days after she apparently stole a
symbiont of her own.”
Sisko
sighed softly, as though carefully considering what he was planning to say.
“Maybe you want to believe Verad’s involved in this because you can’t believe
Ziranne would do it to herself.” He caught Dax’s hand in midair, stopping her
before she could end the conversation by signaling O’Brien. “Old Man, I was
there, too, when Verad came to Deep Space 9. I saw his pain, and I saw how
readily Dax adapted to Verad’s conviction that he’d been wronged once they were
joined.” He shook his head. “Are you absolutely sure your sister didn’t feel
that same frustration? That she didn’t decide, all by herself, that joining was
worth any price she might have to pay?”
“Benjamin,
I know my sister as well as I know myself. And in all her life she never lied
to me.” Or, if she had, she had lied so well that even Jadzia couldn’t pierce
the deception. That thought was intolerable. As intolerable as the possibility
that Ziranne had refused joining only because Jadzia had achieved it first,
thus sacrificing her own happiness in some misguided loyalty to her sister.
“She wasn’t the sort to steal someone else’s symbiont,” Jadzia said carefully,
her hand moving reflexively toward her abdomen. “There isn’t much else I’m sure
of lately, but I have to be sure of that.”
“So,”
Ziranne asked, her face alight with mischief, “what’s he like?” The late spring
breeze through the windows tied her hair into macramé knots, tossing the ends
playfully over her shoulders as she shook out another of Jadzia’s wrinkled
shirts. “Have they let you talk to him yet? Is he nice?”
Jadzia
sighed somewhat dramatically, and bent to rearrange the contents of her small
suitcase in an effort to hide her blush. “I wished you’d stop calling the
symbiont ‘he.’ ” She tried to sound cool and precise, but had a feeling she
merely sounded prissy. “It makes me feel like I’m getting married, or signing
up for a sex change or something.”
“Well,
calling him ‘it’ makes me feel like you’re buying a hovercraft.” Plucking a
pair of trousers from the suitcase, Ziranne lifted a skeptical eyebrow and
turned to rehang the slacks in the closet. “Come on, Jadzia. Half its hosts
have been men, including the last two. It isn’t wrong to call your
symbiont ‘he.’ ”
A
little taste of discomfort twisted Jadzia’s mouth. “If you have to call it
something, call it Dax.”
“All
right.” Content with her new choice from Jadzia’s modest wardrobe, Ziranne
turned back to the staging area that used to be her sister’s bed and resumed
her folding. “But you still didn’t answer my question.”
It
seemed somehow unfair that her younger sister could be more balanced and mature
than Jadzia so much of the time. She bought herself some time by sorting
through her toiletries, counting the last few doses of the medicine that would
help ease her transition, then having to count them again when the number
simply flew out of her head. “I’ve met Curzon lots of times,” she said at last,
quite calmly. “That’s kind of like meeting Dax.”
“And?”
She
shrugged, was suddenly afraid that would look too sulky, and sighed a little as
she dumped the toiletries back into her bag. “Curzon used to be an ambassador
for the Federation. He worked a lot with the Klingons, even lived on Qo’noS for a time.” That
last thought made her stomach pinch. While she’d studied the structure of
Klingons in comparative biology, she’d never actually met one. She wasn’t sure
she wanted to adopt a lot of intimate encounters with a species she wasn’t even
sure she liked. “Before that, Dax was joined with a pilot, and before that, the
scientist who headed the Symbiosis Commission.” She glanced up at Ziranne a little
shyly. “There’s a lot of math and science in Dax’s background.” As well as a
craving for strangeness and new experience. The need to understand, her
Symbiosis advisor had called it. It was what got her picked for this symbiont
over hundreds of other applicants.
Ziranne
stepped back to let Jadzia finish patting down the contents of her suitcase.
Teaching preschool had imbued her with a patience Jadzia sorely envied. So few
things seemed to frustrate her, not even a sister who couldn’t articulate what made
her want to run and hide on the eve of her joining. They’d grown so different,
not just in height and figure, yet remained so much the same that Jadzia knew
her thoughts still leapt straight from her brain into Ziranne s.
“This
is a wonderful thing for you,” Ziranne said gently. “You can’t know how proud I
am.” She let a moment of silence grow between them, then finished, “So why
don’t you seem happy?”
Jadzia
closed her case with a bang, crying out in frustration, “Curzon doesn’t like
me!”
It
didn’t help that Ziranne’s first reaction was to laugh.
“I’m
serious, Ziranne!” She swept up her suitcase and swung it to the floor. “He
really, really hates me! I think he tried to stop me from getting any symbiont
at all.”
“That
sounds just a little paranoid.”
“But
it’s true.” She sat on the bed hard enough to jounce it, and leaned forward to
catch at her sister’s knees. “Do you know what it’s like to have your
symbiont’s last host hate you?”
Ziranne
twined her fingers with Jadzia’s and gave her a little shake. “Maybe it’s not
about you. Maybe he’s not ready to give up Dax just yet.”
“No.”
Jadzia shook her head, frowning with sincerity. “He’s been ill a long time, and
after that heart attack on Risa, he’s been deteriorating rapidly. I think he
means it when he says he doesn’t want the symbiont to be damaged as his health
fails.” Besides, there must be a certain complacency about your own death when
you knew that, in a sense, you wouldn’t really die. A certain aspect of your
awareness would remain within the symbiont forever. The possibility of
who-knew-how-many more lifetimes of exploration and challenge was more exciting
than any fear of death could be.
The
fear that nibbled at Jadzia, however, couldn’t be so easily addressed. “What if
it isn’t Curzon?” Her voice came out all quiet and small. “What if even after
Curzon is gone, it still doesn’t like me? What if it’s Dax?”
A
sister’s value lay in her ability to judge when to laugh and when to take a
foolish fear as seriously as its presenter. “How can it be?” Ziranne wanted to
know. “Doesn’t the symbiont become one with the host after joining? In a sense, won’t Dax essentially become
you?”
Or the
two of them become something else. Still, the end result was the same.
“Then
how can you hate yourself, Jadzia? You’ve worked so long and hard for this. You
know what it means to accept joining, and you know that you’ll be good
for this symbiont, and for Trill.” She smiled and reached up to tuck Jadzia’s
hair back behind her ear. “You can’t hate yourself as Jadzia Dax when you don’t
hate yourself now.”
“I
might hate myself for leaving you,” Jadzia said, very softly.
“But
you’re not leaving.” Ziranne pulled her into a fierce hug, and Jadzia clung to
her with a strange feeling that she was never going to see her again. Not
precisely like this. Not in exactly this way, with these eyes. “If symbiosis is
really right for the Trill,” Ziranne insisted in her ear, “then it’s because
there are people who are made greater by joining, who make the Trill greater by
sacrificing a little of themselves to carry the legacy of all that knowledge
and power.” Separating them, Ziranne gazed deep into her sister’s eyes. “You’re
one of those people, Jadzia. You were made for this.”
Jadzia
tightened her hands on Ziranne’s shoulders. “So were you. You passed all the
tests—the Commission said you’d make a wonderful host.”
But
Ziranne only shook her head. “No, I wouldn’t. I know I wouldn’t because I don’t
want to be joined.” She laughed a little at Jadzia’s disbelieving blink.
“Honestly, Jadzia. I have never wanted this. I went with you to take the tests
because—” She shrugged a bit self-consciously and squeezed her sister’s hand.
“Because I always followed you everywhere. When I did things with you, it was
fun, and exciting, and so different from any of the things I do by myself. But
I never pictured me as anything but who I am, and I never pictured you as
anything but joined.”
Standing,
she hefted the small suitcase and thrust it playfully into Jadzia’s arms. “Go
have this adventure for us.”
Jadzia
blinked back tears, the love between them pushing against her heart so hard she
knew even a million lifetimes couldn’t weaken it or wear it away. “I’m glad
you’re my sister.”
“So am
I.” Ziranne smiled and took her by the arm. “I’m really looking forward to all
the fascinating conversations I’m going to have with Jadzia Dax.”
“Are
you sure he’s a criminal? He doesn’t look like one to me.”
Jadzia’s
heart felt squeezed inside her chest as they made their way down Gheryzan
Hospital’s quiet halls. Memory wasn’t supposed to have this effect on a Trill.
Not even the memory of the man who tried to kill you and steal the very essence
of what you were. She could almost smell Verad in the cool green walls.
She let
Sisko answer the medic who’d walked with them since the main gate. “A kidnapper
and a thief,” the captain explained in a voice much calmer and more pleasant
than Jadzia could have managed. He made no effort to clarify that the object of
Verad’s attempted theft had been a symbiont. Perhaps he thought that information
something the other patients in Gheryzan didn’t need to know, like never
telling the inmates in a prison colony that one of their number had murdered
babies.
The
hospital medic shook his head in disbelief. “You’d never guess he had such a
colorful past from what he’s like in here. Especially if they’ve been declared
rehabilitated, their criminal records are sealed and we never even know they
did anything.” He sighed, then surprised Dax with an almost affectionate smile.
“Well, whatever he did before he came, he’s the easiest client we’ve got
nowadays. Some of these dissociative disorders, they’re outwardly violent, or
self-damaging, at least every once in a while. Verad just watches holovids all
day.” He gave a little laugh as he pushed open the door to the sunroom ahead of
them. “I think the most trouble we’ve ever had with him is over syto beans
at dinner. He really hates syto beans.”
It was
a strangely intimate detail, one Jadzia wasn’t sure she wanted to share. “How
did he end up here?” she heard herself ask. She didn’t mean to pry, yet her
thoughts kept circling back to that off-world job, and wondering how it led him
back to Gheryzan.
“Slipped
into catatonia while on the job.” Their guide wove his way neatly and gently
through a sun-room not even half-filled by perhaps two dozen quiet, blue-gowned
“clients.” Except for the disparity in their ages, they could have been
residents at one of the many communities for elderly Trill who no longer had
families to look after them. “Most Federation outposts these days don’t have
anything passing for long-term care for mental patients, so Shal Tul was forced
to ship him home. He’s been here ever since.”
Jadzia
exchanged a look with Sisko. He nodded without speaking, letting her know he
remembered Ziranne’s shuttle passage to Shal Tul without committing himself to
any other interpretations.
Few of
the patients in the sunroom seemed interested by the trio’s passing. They
continued with their reading, or worked with computers; others slept on mats
rolled out in the nicer sunspots, and still others sat in little groups and
talked or worked on puzzles. In most cases, it wasn’t easy to see what about
their behavior made them unable to live in the general flow of Trill society.
In
other cases, the difficulties suffered became more obvious. A row of chairs,
padded and draped with colorful quilts, faced a large holoscreen that ran a
lively video track with no sound. It was among this group that Jadzia saw the
unconscious gestures and slack, sightless eyes that she associated with the
severely mentally ill. Her heart went out to them all, even Verad, wherever he
might be. To be of a people that valued mind and memory so much, only to end
your days locked away inside yourself like this ... It was too horrible a fate
to consider.
The
medic singled out a dark-haired man of middle years, and smiled down at him as
he pulled his chair out of the line. “You’ve got company.” As he swung the
chair smoothly to face Jadzia and Sisko, he announced cheerfully, “He’ll have
been with us four months next week. Like I said, a good guy, as far as these
things go.”
Jadzia
wasn’t sure what to say. Glancing uncertainly at Sisko, she knelt to stare into
eyes as pale and blind as brushed silver. “This is Verad?”
“Sure.”
The medic sounded surprised. “Isn’t that who you asked for?”
Indeed
they had. But the man staring back at Jadzia from the bottom of a well so deep
he couldn’t climb out wasn’t familiar because of buried memories from Ops on
Deep Space 9. He was familiar because of the arguments she’d had with him—or
with a man who looked exactly like him—less than two hours ago in her sister’s
room at the Symbiosis Commission.
The man
staring slackly from the chair in front of them was Commissioner Duhan Vos.
Even
the long moments needed to fully materialize seemed too long. Jadzia willed her
legs to run! before the transporter had a chance to release her, wanted
to shout with rage at the delay between her thought and when her muscles
obeyed. She heard Sisko trying again to raise Bashir via combadge, but burst
through the door separating the transporter station from the rest of the
hospital without waiting to hear if he received an answer this time.
The
sunshine that had warmed her so well on her way to Gheryzan was merely blinding
now. She squinted hard against the shards of brightness, and told herself the
tears flooding into her eyes were from that pain and not her own helpless fear.
A quick
records check via the Defiant had given them enough information to
create at least a sketchy image
of the horror Verad had committed. Duhan and Vos had been joined more than
twenty years before, when Duhan had been a very young man, eager to take his
first off-world job as a chemical engineer. Now, the real Duhan sat, dead-faced
and dull-eyed, in the last Trill asylum, and there was no sign of Vos within
him. Verad had found a way to have the symbiont he desired without having to
flee the quadrant after his theft—by taking over the life, even the face, of an
already existing joined Trill. There was no need to explain how Verad came by a
symbiont; he became Duhan Vos, not Verad Vos, and Duhan Vos was the legitimate
version of everything Verad wanted to be.
Jadzia
shuddered to think of what he intended to accomplish as a member of the
Symbiosis Commission.
Sisko
grabbed at her arm to slow her as she skidded around the doorway to Ziranne’s
room. “Easy, Old Man.” Whether he’d somehow known to suspect what they found or
simply saw the tableau a moment sooner than her own fear-blinded eyes, she’d
never know. But Dax’s trust of the man let Jadzia be stopped, and she would
forever be grateful for that instinct.
Ziranne
didn’t turn, didn’t even so much as cock her head when the two Starfleet
officers froze a few meters away. Her face was so pale, Jadzia could almost see
the yellow of her skull through the flesh, her spots faded almost transparent
by shock and system imbalances Jadzia could only guess at. She had backed
Verad/Duhan against the window, the electromagnetic blade of one of Bashir’s
laser scalpels glowing greenly against his throat. The doctor himself was
nowhere to be seen.
The
commissioner slid a panicked glance toward the doorway. “Help me,” he
whispered. “We’ve been here ...” He swallowed thickly, took a shuddering
breath. “She’s sedated—the woman is gone.”
“Your
doctor was able to waken the symbiont, but ... it’s ruined, it’s gone
completely mad—”
“Stop
lying.” Ziranne’s voice
sounded clotted, blurred and rounded by drugs and—Jadzia suspected—a certain
unfamiliarity with producing language minus the help of an appropriately suited
brain. Nothing else about her body moved, as though the act of creating speech
made it impossible to move any other muscles. “If we’re ruined, it was you who
ruined us. Tell them what you did to me. Tell them why I’m going to kill you.”
Verad’s
eyes reached for Jadzia across the distance. Frightened, defiant, he wouldn’t
back down, she knew. Not for her, not for Ziranne, not for anyone. “I don’t
know what she’s talking about. You’ve got to stop her before she does something
no one can forgive.”
“It’s
over, Verad.” Sisko tightened his hand on Jadzia’s arm, ever so slightly, and
took a step closer to Ziranne. “We’ve been to Gheryzan. We know what you’ve
done.”
There
was a moment when Jadzia thought he’d try to extend the ruse. Then Verad stared
yearningly at Ziranne, and the naked desperation on his face made him look
suddenly more like Jadzia remembered. “I only wanted a symbiont,” he said, in a
very tiny voice. His eyes looked at Ziranne, but his words reached deeper,
toward the life-form she carried inside her. “Just one symbiont. For myself.”
“And he
followed the rumors to Shal Tul,” the symbiont took up. “To Bethan Roa, the old
man whose failing mind led him to the greatest madness of all.” The host’s head
twisted slightly to direct the words toward the officers in the doorway, but
Ziranne didn’t precisely turn away from Verad.” He wanted to hide his brain’s
infirmity from the Symbiosis Commission. He took drugs that the humans said
could knit his fractured thoughts back into order. Except the price he paid for
clear thinking was ours. His mind rebounded to its youthful brilliance, but the
drugs began to dissolve the bond he shared with us. Thus a new and bitter vice
was born.”
“I only
wanted a symbiont.” That mantra seemed to sustain Verad. A lack of empathy
toward others, Bashir had said. Perhaps this was how Verad justified it all
to himself. “Bethan Roa sold me a perfected version of the drug, which I used
on Duhan Vos. The drug makes it possible to extract a joined symbiont without
killing the host. Bethan knew of doctors who could help, who could transfer the
symbiont once the bond was broken, and dispose of the old host. They gave me
his symbiont and his face. I made my own life for myself.”
At the
expense of a man who had never done Verad even a moment’s harm.
“He
won’t recover.” Jadzia couldn’t keep the anger and anguish from her tone.
“Whatever your drug did to him, it’s destroyed his mind forever.”
As
sincerely as could be imagined, Verad said only, “I’m sorry.” The same answer
he’d given on Deep Space 9 when told his theft of the Dax symbiont would kill an innocent young woman. Old men on
distant colonies were less well defended than Starfleet science officers, but
apparently no more valuable.
Jadzia
met her sister’s eyes, but saw someone else in the anguished face. “You’re Roa,
aren’t you?”
Slowly,
as though with extreme conscious effort, Ziranne blinked and took a breath,
nodding. “The trace chemicals your doctor found in this host’s system were from
the drug set Bethan developed. His success, with Verad convinced him he could
use it to exploit others like him—unjoined Trills who would do anything to be
joined. The drug would make it possible to give them a taste of what they
wanted—for a fee. One symbiont could be passed among many—a month in one, two
weeks in another. When Verad learned of Bethan’s plans to use Vos, he used the
drug on Bethan first. He killed Bethan, and made me a commodity. But
Verad gave no thought to the damage Bethan’s drug was doing to me, or to my
hosts. Then this host found out, and paid to be the next in line, in order to
bring me back to Trill.”
Jadzia
was too horrified to speak. Sisko asked, “So you—and Ziranne—never intended to
remain joined?”
The
joined thing that was neither entirely symbiont nor entirely host shook its
head. “There was no intent involved. This host and I stole the drug before
running, to use them once we were back on Trill, so that I could return to the
pools. This host gave of itself to rescue me. This host offered of itself the
gift of movement and form. But we were too damaged to continue functioning for as long as we had hoped, and the drug
was lost.”
Jadzia’s
complete revulsion at the atrocity being described was absolute. Bond, dissolve
the bond, pass the symbiont along to the next host in line with no regard for
its mental health or stability. Her stomach turned sour at the prospect. In the
past, when there weren’t enough homes for individuals on an overpopulated
planet, whole families learned to live in a single apartment, people who would
never otherwise know each other chose to pool their funds to purchase housing.
But a symbiont was not a house. Neither Jadzia nor Dax could imagine the damage
wreaked—on both symbiont and host—by something so barbaric as treating a
fragile life-form like a summer house that many different owners could share.
Yet it stood here in front of them, in the form of a beloved sister who no
longer knew her own name.
“Ziranne
...” Jadzia took a few careful steps into the room. The remnant of her sister
didn’t even turn to look. “Ziranne, you can’t kill him.”
“She
doesn’t have to,” the stranger’s voice said. “There is no part of her
consciousness involved in what’s happening here. As soon as we have forced him
to confess his part, I will kill him for us all.”
Fear flooded
her eyes briefly with tears. Jadzia blinked them back, retreating to Dax’s
steadier perspective. “You can’t kill him either, Roa.” This time Ziranne’s
head swivelled, slowly, dreamily. “The symbiont inside him doesn’t deserve
punishment any more than you did. If you kill Verad, you risk killing the
symbiont he carries—the symbiont he stole.”
She
thought she saw just the slightest hesitation in Ziranne’s eyes. “You could
remove it before he perishes—”
“We can
do that anyway.”
Realization
blossomed between Roa and Verad at almost the same moment. The horror and
anguish on Verad’s face almost balanced the satisfaction that crept into
Ziranne’s expression.
“The
drug set Bethan developed gives us that ability,” Jadzia continued. “You may
have lost the sample, but you were once Bethan, too—you know what’s needed to
synthesize more. We can use it to remove you from Ziranne, and Vos from Verad.
You can both return to the pools and find some peace. With the information you
can give us, the Commission will find Verad’s other ‘customers’ and make sure
this never happens again. And Verad will be punished as he deserves.”
“More
carefully than last time.” Roa angled a pleading look over Ziranne’s shoulder.
Jadzia
nodded solemnly. “More carefully.” Although she didn’t know that this was a
promise she needed to make. The loss of life in Verad’s eyes almost matched
what she’d seen in Duhan’s back at Gheryzan. They had no idea how long Verad
had carried this symbiont, how complete their mutual bond had become. Or how much
like Duhan he would finally be when this was over. Even if he retained his
sanity, to face the rest of existence after having your symbiont extracted from
your being, and no chance that death would mercifully release you from that
future—that seemed a greater punishment than anything Jadzia or anyone else
could devise.
Evidently,
the Roa symbiont agreed. With a slow blink, and then a sigh, Ziranne’s body
took an unsteady step back from the hunched-over form of the erstwhile
commissioner—then crumpled into Jadzia’s outstretched arms.
Holding
her sisters cool hand in both her own, Jadzia watched the ghostly movements of
Ziranne’s eyes behind their lids. Even in sleep, she smiled now. Once, when her
eyes flickered open at the sound of a bird caroling outside the window, she’d
focused hazily on Jadzia and whispered, “I knew you’d come. I knew you’d make
everything okay.”
Jadzia
leaned down close, resting her forehead against Ziranne’s. “Have I?” The not
knowing for certain frightened her. “Ziranne, the symbiont is gone.”
“Roa.”
Ziranne nodded sleepily. “I know. I can ... tell.” She smiled with amazing
peacefulness. “I was so afraid they wouldn’t call you. That no one would
believe me when I said I wanted it removed. But I knew you’d remember. I knew
you’d know what to do.”
It
seemed like such a big risk to take. “Was Bethan Roa your student’s
grandfather?”
Again
the drowsy nod. “Lyrrin was so upset when her grandfather died. So I took her
to the pools to see Roa, to show that her grandfather would never be completely
gone. When Roa wasn’t there, and when I couldn’t find any information about a
new host, I knew something was wrong.”
“Why
didn’t you just tell someone?”
“I
didn’t know what to tell them. I thought maybe Lyrrin’s family had heard wrong.
I wanted to make sure I did the right thing, so I just asked myself, ‘What
would Jadzia do?’ ” She squeezed Jadzia’s hand, her eyes drifting closed again
toward restful slumber. “And I knew you’d find the missing symbiont and make
sure it got back home. You’d find out what went wrong, and you’d fix things—you
always do.”
Jadzia
didn’t answer. Being anyone’s hero was always a huge undertaking. Being the
hero of the person who mattered almost more to you than yourself was a
fearfully powerful thought.
“Is
your doctor okay?” Ziranne asked.
“Recovering.”
They’d found him nearly a half-hour after Roa surrendered Ziranne’s body,
locked into a storage closet after being nearly overdosed on sedatives. “I
don’t know whether to scold you or Roa for taking advantage of his good nature.”
Ziranne
managed a sleepy, lopsided smile. “I’m not sure who to blame, either. It was so
strange, knowing and wanting things that somehow weren’t my own, but which felt
so much like mine. I knew when I—we—it—drugged the doctor, that we meant to get
him out of the way so we could kill Verad. Yet I kept thinking how I would
never do that, how I could never kill anybody.” She laced her fingers with
Jadzia’s, her grip loving and strong despite the lingering anesthetic in her
system. “Thank you for helping me rescue him without having to become him.
Thank you for letting me be just me.”
Jadzia
smoothed a hand across her sister’s cool cheek, smiling, then let Ziranne slip
into whatever private dreams would soothe her now that she was alone with
herself again, the way she wanted to be. Although it might not be very
important to her sister, Jadzia was comforted to know that at least a little of
Ziranne’s life would be remembered by one of Trill’s symbionts, and shared with
all the others resting in the pools. She wanted the joined of the future to
know what she knew now: that many, maybe even most, of the unjoined people of
Trill felt no less a part of their complex species than those who hosted the
symbionts. And that at least one of them, with no desire to be part of the
continuum of joined memory, would still risk her own life to bring a symbiont
safely home.
“We’re part of something bigger
than any of us.”
—Torias Dax
“Facets”
Judith &
Garfield Reeves-Stevens
“ALL THAT,” Vic said, “all of it ... and it hit you ... pow! ... Just like that?”
“All of
it,” Ezri said. “And more. So much more. I ... I couldn’t even tell Brinner
what it was like. And he had had the preliminary courses.”
“Brinner?
He was okay?”
Ezri
nodded, experiencing the sadness and the awkwardness of her reunion with
Brinner Finok once more. He was safe, unhurt, but what they’d had together
could never be the same again. Not when she had been given what he had so
desperately wanted and worked for all his life. “The changeling didn’t kill
him. It just put him into medical stasis and hid him in a medical supply room.”
“Kinda
odd thing for a changeling to do, don’t you think?”
Ezri
sat up from where she had been leaning against Vic’s shoulder. “I suppose. No one
ever figured out what that changeling was really trying to do. We don’t think
there’s any way it could have joined with Dax. Maybe it could have linked minds
somehow. Accessed Dax’s Starfleet secrets. Maybe even have kept Dax alive long
enough to get back to the Founders’ homeworld and ... who knows what could’ve
happened then?”
“Which
is why you couldn’t tell anyone what happened,” Vic concluded.
“Not
while the war was on,” Ezri confirmed. “In most sectors, especially on the
front lines, it was Starfleet policy to withhold reports of changeling
impersonations. To keep up morale. And to keep other changelings from finding
out which ones had been caught. I think the policy’s changing now. But it still
comes down to the same thing. At the time, I was the only Trill on
board.”
“And
that changeling in the Bajoran uniform?” Vic asked. “The one that brought Dax
onto the Destiny? Odo, right?”
“Odo,”
Ezri said. “I realized that later. But he was so upset, I don’t think he even
remembers seeing me. At least, he’s never mentioned it.”
“Strangers
in the night,” Vic said.
Ezri
let Vic’s sports coat slip from her shoulders. Somehow, the night felt warmer.
Maybe it was the heat from the lights on the improbable giant slipper. Or maybe
she was just getting used to the night air.
Vic
stretched out the arm he had kept around her, as if a simulated cramp had formed in his simulated muscles.
Ezri
narrowed her eyes at him as he rubbed his arm, thinking about all the theories
she had heard to explain his behavior. “Are you really a hologram?” she
asked.
Vic’s
only answer was to give her a sly wink and a friendly punch on the shoulder.
“Funny thing about those stories,” he said.
Ezri
decided he was trying to change the subject. Someday, she’d make a point of
asking to hear all of Vic’s stories. She suspected he had more than a few
surprises of his own. But that was a question for another day. Or for a
timeless desert night. “What’s funny?” she asked.
“They’re
all so different. I mean, same worm, right? But there’s Lela Dax loving politics
and mixing it up with a crowd. But Tobin Dax sounds like he would’ve been happy
living by himself in the middle of Death Valley. Torias Dax wanted to win
everything for himself. Curzon Dax wanted to help everyone else win. And Joran
Dax ...” Vic paused as he seemed to understand the sudden flash of warning in
Ezri’s eyes. “Well, enough said about that cat.”
Ezri
couldn’t have agreed more. Having all of Joran’s memories restored was one of
the hardest adjustments Jadzia had been forced to make, and they proved no
easier for Ezri to live with.
She
stood up and stretched herself. She had no idea how long she had been sitting
with Vic. “Your point?” she asked.
“Hey,
I’m a crooner not a counselor.”
A
hologram with false modesty, Ezri
thought. What a universe. “You’re not ‘crooning’ now,” she reminded him.
“But you do look like you have something to say.” She folded her arms as she
faced him. “Am I right? Or am I right?”
Vic
laughed. “Seems to me that you didn’t want to get joined because you were
afraid of losing yourself. But from what I can tell, none of Dax’s previous
hosts lost anything from being joined. They just got more.”
Ezri
had never thought of it that way. “More of what?”
Vic
pursed his lips, shook his head. “More of ... I don’t know ... maybe more of
whatever it is that ... that makes us human.”
Ezri
stared at the hologram until he lost his stage performer’s grin. She didn’t
care what anyone else said. She was certain there was something more to Vic
Fontaine than holoemitters and microforcefields.
“I told
you what I was doing out here,” she said at last.
“Checking
out the place for Julian. For one of his lost causes.”
Ezri
nodded. “So tell me, what were you doing out here, in the middle of
nowhere?”
“It’s
my night off.”
“No,”
Ezri insisted. “I mean, really, why were you out here?”
Vic put
his hands in his pockets, and for once his expression was serious. “Really?
It’s a big simulation, doll. I like to make sure my friends don’t get ...
lost.” But then he grinned again, erasing whatever moment of connection Ezri felt she might have just
established with him. “It’s bad for business when the tourists start turning up
in the sand dunes, if you catch my drift.”
“Yeah,”
Ezri agreed, “I suppose it is.”
Vic
picked up his sports coat from the electrical box, gave it a shake, then
brushed some dust from it. “So how about it, doll? Need an escort back to the
bright lights and big city? Maybe check up on that boyfriend of yours?”
Ezri
looked up, past the glowing shoe, past the jumbled, waiting signs no longer pointing
the way to anywhere, to the stars above.
And
with a start, for the first time that night, she realized they were not alien
stars after all.
“Emony
was on Earth,” she said, the memories of those days and those adventures
rushing through her consciousness even as she said the words, sparked by the
stories she had told.
“You
mentioned that,” Vic said.
Ezri
was suddenly overcome by the knowledge that the tapestry of lights above,
nothing more than random patterns to Ezri Tigan, were old familiar friends to
Ezri Dax.
“Orion,”
she said softly as the patterns coalesced. “And Taurus. Ursa Major.”
“You
sound like you’re on to something,” Vic said encouragingly.
Ezri
sighted from those stars and pointed into the darkness. “Due east,” she said.
“The Strip is three kilometers in that direction.”
“No
holding you back, dollface.”
Ezri
smiled in agreement, even as she tried to find some hint of what Vic was
actually thinking, what he really meant. But the hologram, the nightclub singer
... her friend, gave no clue to the depths that lay hidden deep beneath
his surface. If, indeed, there were depths there to be explored or
comprehended.
“No,”
Ezri said, because she did understand the truth of what Vic meant. “No holding
me back. Not now.”
“For my
money, doll, not ever.”
For no
reason at all that would ever make sense to her, Ezri suddenly stepped forward
and kissed Vic on the cheek, hologram or not.
He
actually blushed.
“Whoa,
what was that for, doll?”
Ezri
straightened his tie. “You know.” She sighed and the sigh turned into a yawn.
“I’d better be going.”
Vic
checked his watch, as if a hologram could have someplace else to go. “Me, too.”
“See
you,” she said.
Vic
cocked a finger at her, as if to shoot her with an imaginary phaser.
“And
thanks,” Ezri added. Then, her earlier fatigue a thing of the past, like so
many other things, she started to walk from the clearing, into the thicket of
signs.
“Hey!”
Vic called out from behind her, “it’s two miles to town! You could just say,
End program.”
Ezri
looked back over her shoulder. “I know where I’m going.”
“You
know something, doll? You always did.”
Ezri
couldn’t resist. She gave Vic his own parting shot with an imaginary phaser.
“Badda bing,” she said.
Vic
laughed, threw his sports coat over his shoulder, and started off in another
direction, wherever it was that holograms went when there was no one around to
see them.
Ezri
turned back to the east, saw the sky brightening with dawn, or, at least, a
reasonable facsimile thereof.
This
should be interesting, she
thought. Not even Emony had seen Las Vegas by day.
No
longer lost, Ezri Dax set off on her own journey, sure at last of her own
destination, but, like every Dax before her, curious to see what she might find
along the way.
From
the shadows of the signs, Vic watched her go, and allowed himself a smile. A
real one, this time, and not a simulation.
Then he
turned and hurried off on his own journey, secure in the knowledge that there
were many more stories still to be told by his friends on Deep Space 9, and
that he’d be able to hear them all.
Because
he knew that he’d be back—they all would be back.
Just
like Dax.
(DEC, 2003)—Scanned, proofed, and formatted by Bibliophile.